summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/old
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to 'old')
-rw-r--r--old/rbcr210.txt9387
-rw-r--r--old/rbcr210.zipbin0 -> 200192 bytes
2 files changed, 9387 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/old/rbcr210.txt b/old/rbcr210.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b0da203
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/rbcr210.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,9387 @@
+The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Further Adventures of Robinson Crusoe
+by Daniel Defoe
+(#4 in our series by Daniel Defoe)
+
+Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
+copyright laws for your country before distributing this or any other
+Project Gutenberg file.
+
+We encourage you to keep this file, exactly as it is, on your
+own disk, thereby keeping an electronic path open for future
+readers. Please do not remove this.
+
+This header should be the first thing seen when anyone starts to
+view the etext. Do not change or edit it without written permission.
+The words are carefully chosen to provide users with the
+information they need to understand what they may and may not
+do with the etext.
+
+
+**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
+
+**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
+
+*****These Etexts Are Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
+
+Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get etexts, and
+further information, is included below. We need your donations.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a 501(c)(3)
+organization with EIN [Employee Identification Number] 64-6221541
+
+
+
+Title: The Further Adventures of Robinson Crusoe [Robinson Crusoe Part 2]
+
+Author: Daniel Defoe
+
+Release Date: June, 1996 [Etext #561]
+[This file was first posted on April 10, 1996]
+[Most recently updated: December 20, 2001]
+
+Edition: 10
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Further Adventures of Robinson Crusoe
+by Daniel Defoe
+******This file should be named rbcr210.txt or rbcr210.zip******
+
+Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, rbcr211.txt
+VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, rbcr210a.txt
+
+Transcribed by David Price, email ccx074@coventry.ac.uk, from the 1919
+Seeley, Service and Co. edition.
+
+Project Gutenberg Etexts are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not
+keep etexts in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+We are now trying to release all our etexts one year in advance
+of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
+Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
+even years after the official publication date.
+
+Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
+midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
+The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
+Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
+preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
+and editing by those who wish to do so.
+
+Most people start at our sites at:
+http://gutenberg.net or
+http://promo.net/pg
+
+These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
+Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
+etexts, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).
+
+
+Those of you who want to download any Etext before announcement
+can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is
+also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
+indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
+announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.
+
+http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
+ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03
+
+Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90
+
+Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
+as it appears in our Newsletters.
+
+
+Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
+
+We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
+time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
+to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
+searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our
+projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value
+per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
+million dollars per hour in 2001 as we release over 50 new Etext
+files per month, or 500 more Etexts in 2000 for a total of 4000+
+If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
+should reach over 300 billion Etexts given away by year's end.
+
+The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
+Files by December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000 = 1 Trillion]
+This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
+which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.
+
+At our revised rates of production, we will reach only one-third
+of that goal by the end of 2001, or about 4,000 Etexts. We need
+funding, as well as continued efforts by volunteers, to maintain
+or increase our production and reach our goals.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
+to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+As of November, 2001, contributions are being solicited from people
+and organizations in: Alabama, Arkansas, Connecticut, Delaware,
+Florida, Georgia, Idaho, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky,
+Louisiana, Maine, Michigan, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
+Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Oklahoma, Oregon,
+Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South Dakota, Tennessee,
+Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West Virginia, Wisconsin,
+and Wyoming.
+
+*In Progress
+
+We have filed in about 45 states now, but these are the only ones
+that have responded.
+
+As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
+will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
+Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.
+
+In answer to various questions we have received on this:
+
+We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
+request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and
+you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
+just ask.
+
+While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
+not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
+donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
+donate.
+
+International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
+how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
+deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
+ways.
+
+All donations should be made to:
+
+Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+PMB 113
+1739 University Ave.
+Oxford, MS 38655-4109
+
+Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
+method other than by check or money order.
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
+the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
+[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are
+tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fundraising
+requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
+made and fundraising will begin in the additional states.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+You can get up to date donation information at:
+
+http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html
+
+
+***
+
+If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
+you can always email directly to:
+
+Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
+
+Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.
+
+We would prefer to send you information by email.
+
+
+**The Legal Small Print**
+
+
+(Three Pages)
+
+***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
+Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
+They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
+your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
+someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
+fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
+disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
+you may distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
+
+*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
+By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
+this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
+a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
+sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
+you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
+medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
+
+ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
+This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etexts,
+is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
+through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
+Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
+on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
+distribute it in the United States without permission and
+without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
+below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
+under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
+
+Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
+any commercial products without permission.
+
+To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
+efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
+works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
+medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
+things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
+disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
+codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
+But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
+[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
+receive this etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims
+all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
+legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
+UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
+INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
+OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
+POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
+
+If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
+receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
+you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
+time to the person you received it from. If you received it
+on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
+such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
+copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
+choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
+receive it electronically.
+
+THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
+TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
+PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
+
+Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
+the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
+above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
+may have other legal rights.
+
+INDEMNITY
+You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
+and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
+with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
+legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
+following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this etext,
+[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the etext,
+or [3] any Defect.
+
+DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
+You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
+disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
+"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
+or:
+
+[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
+ requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
+ etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
+ if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
+ binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
+ including any form resulting from conversion by word
+ processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
+ *EITHER*:
+
+ [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
+ does *not* contain characters other than those
+ intended by the author of the work, although tilde
+ (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
+ be used to convey punctuation intended by the
+ author, and additional characters may be used to
+ indicate hypertext links; OR
+
+ [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
+ no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
+ form by the program that displays the etext (as is
+ the case, for instance, with most word processors);
+ OR
+
+ [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
+ no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
+ etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
+ or other equivalent proprietary form).
+
+[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
+ "Small Print!" statement.
+
+[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
+ gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
+ already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
+ don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
+ payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
+ the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
+ legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
+ periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to
+ let us know your plans and to work out the details.
+
+WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
+Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
+public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
+in machine readable form.
+
+The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
+public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
+Money should be paid to the:
+"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
+software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
+hart@pobox.com
+
+[Portions of this header are copyright (C) 2001 by Michael S. Hart
+and may be reprinted only when these Etexts are free of all fees.]
+[Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be used in any sales
+of Project Gutenberg Etexts or other materials be they hardware or
+software or any other related product without express permission.]
+
+*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.10/04/01*END*
+
+
+
+
+THE FURTHER ADVENTURES OF ROBINSON CRUSOE
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I--REVISITS ISLAND
+
+
+
+That homely proverb, used on so many occasions in England, viz.
+"That what is bred in the bone will not go out of the flesh," was
+never more verified than in the story of my Life. Any one would
+think that after thirty-five years' affliction, and a variety of
+unhappy circumstances, which few men, if any, ever went through
+before, and after near seven years of peace and enjoyment in the
+fulness of all things; grown old, and when, if ever, it might be
+allowed me to have had experience of every state of middle life,
+and to know which was most adapted to make a man completely happy;
+I say, after all this, any one would have thought that the native
+propensity to rambling which I gave an account of in my first
+setting out in the world to have been so predominant in my
+thoughts, should be worn out, and I might, at sixty one years of
+age, have been a little inclined to stay at home, and have done
+venturing life and fortune any more.
+
+Nay, farther, the common motive of foreign adventures was taken
+away in me, for I had no fortune to make; I had nothing to seek:
+if I had gained ten thousand pounds I had been no richer; for I had
+already sufficient for me, and for those I had to leave it to; and
+what I had was visibly increasing; for, having no great family, I
+could not spend the income of what I had unless I would set up for
+an expensive way of living, such as a great family, servants,
+equipage, gaiety, and the like, which were things I had no notion
+of, or inclination to; so that I had nothing, indeed, to do but to
+sit still, and fully enjoy what I had got, and see it increase
+daily upon my hands. Yet all these things had no effect upon me,
+or at least not enough to resist the strong inclination I had to go
+abroad again, which hung about me like a chronic distemper. In
+particular, the desire of seeing my new plantation in the island,
+and the colony I left there, ran in my head continually. I dreamed
+of it all night, and my imagination ran upon it all day: it was
+uppermost in all my thoughts, and my fancy worked so steadily and
+strongly upon it that I talked of it in my sleep; in short, nothing
+could remove it out of my mind: it even broke so violently into
+all my discourses that it made my conversation tiresome, for I
+could talk of nothing else; all my discourse ran into it, even to
+impertinence; and I saw it myself.
+
+I have often heard persons of good judgment say that all the stir
+that people make in the world about ghosts and apparitions is owing
+to the strength of imagination, and the powerful operation of fancy
+in their minds; that there is no such thing as a spirit appearing,
+or a ghost walking; that people's poring affectionately upon the
+past conversation of their deceased friends so realises it to them
+that they are capable of fancying, upon some extraordinary
+circumstances, that they see them, talk to them, and are answered
+by them, when, in truth, there is nothing but shadow and vapour in
+the thing, and they really know nothing of the matter.
+
+For my part, I know not to this hour whether there are any such
+things as real apparitions, spectres, or walking of people after
+they are dead; or whether there is anything in the stories they
+tell us of that kind more than the product of vapours, sick minds,
+and wandering fancies: but this I know, that my imagination worked
+up to such a height, and brought me into such excess of vapours, or
+what else I may call it, that I actually supposed myself often upon
+the spot, at my old castle, behind the trees; saw my old Spaniard,
+Friday's father, and the reprobate sailors I left upon the island;
+nay, I fancied I talked with them, and looked at them steadily,
+though I was broad awake, as at persons just before me; and this I
+did till I often frightened myself with the images my fancy
+represented to me. One time, in my sleep, I had the villainy of
+the three pirate sailors so lively related to me by the first
+Spaniard, and Friday's father, that it was surprising: they told
+me how they barbarously attempted to murder all the Spaniards, and
+that they set fire to the provisions they had laid up, on purpose
+to distress and starve them; things that I had never heard of, and
+that, indeed, were never all of them true in fact: but it was so
+warm in my imagination, and so realised to me, that, to the hour I
+saw them, I could not be persuaded but that it was or would be
+true; also how I resented it, when the Spaniard complained to me;
+and how I brought them to justice, tried them, and ordered them all
+three to be hanged. What there was really in this shall be seen in
+its place; for however I came to form such things in my dream, and
+what secret converse of spirits injected it, yet there was, I say,
+much of it true. I own that this dream had nothing in it literally
+and specifically true; but the general part was so true--the base;
+villainous behaviour of these three hardened rogues was such, and
+had been so much worse than all I can describe, that the dream had
+too much similitude of the fact; and as I would afterwards have
+punished them severely, so, if I had hanged them all, I had been
+much in the right, and even should have been justified both by the
+laws of God and man.
+
+But to return to my story. In this kind of temper I lived some
+years; I had no enjoyment of my life, no pleasant hours, no
+agreeable diversion but what had something or other of this in it;
+so that my wife, who saw my mind wholly bent upon it, told me very
+seriously one night that she believed there was some secret,
+powerful impulse of Providence upon me, which had determined me to
+go thither again; and that she found nothing hindered me going but
+my being engaged to a wife and children. She told me that it was
+true she could not think of parting with me: but as she was
+assured that if she was dead it would be the first thing I would
+do, so, as it seemed to her that the thing was determined above,
+she would not be the only obstruction; for, if I thought fit and
+resolved to go--[Here she found me very intent upon her words, and
+that I looked very earnestly at her, so that it a little disordered
+her, and she stopped. I asked her why she did not go on, and say
+out what she was going to say? But I perceived that her heart was
+too full, and some tears stood in her eyes.] "Speak out, my dear,"
+said I; "are you willing I should go?"--"No," says she, very
+affectionately, "I am far from willing; but if you are resolved to
+go," says she, "rather than I would be the only hindrance, I will
+go with you: for though I think it a most preposterous thing for
+one of your years, and in your condition, yet, if it must be," said
+she, again weeping, "I would not leave you; for if it be of Heaven
+you must do it, there is no resisting it; and if Heaven make it
+your duty to go, He will also make it mine to go with you, or
+otherwise dispose of me, that I may not obstruct it."
+
+This affectionate behaviour of my wife's brought me a little out of
+the vapours, and I began to consider what I was doing; I corrected
+my wandering fancy, and began to argue with myself sedately what
+business I had after threescore years, and after such a life of
+tedious sufferings and disasters, and closed in so happy and easy a
+manner; I, say, what business had I to rush into new hazards, and
+put myself upon adventures fit only for youth and poverty to run
+into?
+
+With those thoughts I considered my new engagement; that I had a
+wife, one child born, and my wife then great with child of another;
+that I had all the world could give me, and had no need to seek
+hazard for gain; that I was declining in years, and ought to think
+rather of leaving what I had gained than of seeking to increase it;
+that as to what my wife had said of its being an impulse from
+Heaven, and that it should be my duty to go, I had no notion of
+that; so, after many of these cogitations, I struggled with the
+power of my imagination, reasoned myself out of it, as I believe
+people may always do in like cases if they will: in a word, I
+conquered it, composed myself with such arguments as occurred to my
+thoughts, and which my present condition furnished me plentifully
+with; and particularly, as the most effectual method, I resolved to
+divert myself with other things, and to engage in some business
+that might effectually tie me up from any more excursions of this
+kind; for I found that thing return upon me chiefly when I was
+idle, and had nothing to do, nor anything of moment immediately
+before me. To this purpose, I bought a little farm in the county
+of Bedford, and resolved to remove myself thither. I had a little
+convenient house upon it, and the land about it, I found, was
+capable of great improvement; and it was many ways suited to my
+inclination, which delighted in cultivating, managing, planting,
+and improving of land; and particularly, being an inland country, I
+was removed from conversing among sailors and things relating to
+the remote parts of the world. I went down to my farm, settled my
+family, bought ploughs, harrows, a cart, waggon-horses, cows, and
+sheep, and, setting seriously to work, became in one half-year a
+mere country gentleman. My thoughts were entirely taken up in
+managing my servants, cultivating the ground, enclosing, planting,
+&c.; and I lived, as I thought, the most agreeable life that nature
+was capable of directing, or that a man always bred to misfortunes
+was capable of retreating to.
+
+I farmed upon my own land; I had no rent to pay, was limited by no
+articles; I could pull up or cut down as I pleased; what I planted
+was for myself, and what I improved was for my family; and having
+thus left off the thoughts of wandering, I had not the least
+discomfort in any part of life as to this world. Now I thought,
+indeed, that I enjoyed the middle state of life which my father so
+earnestly recommended to me, and lived a kind of heavenly life,
+something like what is described by the poet, upon the subject of a
+country life:-
+
+
+"Free from vices, free from care,
+Age has no pain, and youth no snare."
+
+
+But in the middle of all this felicity, one blow from unseen
+Providence unhinged me at once; and not only made a breach upon me
+inevitable and incurable, but drove me, by its consequences, into a
+deep relapse of the wandering disposition, which, as I may say,
+being born in my very blood, soon recovered its hold of me; and,
+like the returns of a violent distemper, came on with an
+irresistible force upon me. This blow was the loss of my wife. It
+is not my business here to write an elegy upon my wife, give a
+character of her particular virtues, and make my court to the sex
+by the flattery of a funeral sermon. She was, in a few words, the
+stay of all my affairs; the centre of all my enterprises; the
+engine that, by her prudence, reduced me to that happy compass I
+was in, from the most extravagant and ruinous project that filled
+my head, and did more to guide my rambling genius than a mother's
+tears, a father's instructions, a friend's counsel, or all my own
+reasoning powers could do. I was happy in listening to her, and in
+being moved by her entreaties; and to the last degree desolate and
+dislocated in the world by the loss of her.
+
+When she was gone, the world looked awkwardly round me. I was as
+much a stranger in it, in my thoughts, as I was in the Brazils,
+when I first went on shore there; and as much alone, except for the
+assistance of servants, as I was in my island. I knew neither what
+to think nor what to do. I saw the world busy around me: one part
+labouring for bread, another part squandering in vile excesses or
+empty pleasures, but equally miserable because the end they
+proposed still fled from them; for the men of pleasure every day
+surfeited of their vice, and heaped up work for sorrow and
+repentance; and the men of labour spent their strength in daily
+struggling for bread to maintain the vital strength they laboured
+with: so living in a daily circulation of sorrow, living but to
+work, and working but to live, as if daily bread were the only end
+of wearisome life, and a wearisome life the only occasion of daily
+bread.
+
+This put me in mind of the life I lived in my kingdom, the island;
+where I suffered no more corn to grow, because I did not want it;
+and bred no more goats, because I had no more use for them; where
+the money lay in the drawer till it grew mouldy, and had scarce the
+favour to be looked upon in twenty years. All these things, had I
+improved them as I ought to have done, and as reason and religion
+had dictated to me, would have taught me to search farther than
+human enjoyments for a full felicity; and that there was something
+which certainly was the reason and end of life superior to all
+these things, and which was either to be possessed, or at least
+hoped for, on this side of the grave.
+
+But my sage counsellor was gone; I was like a ship without a pilot,
+that could only run afore the wind. My thoughts ran all away again
+into the old affair; my head was quite turned with the whimsies of
+foreign adventures; and all the pleasant, innocent amusements of my
+farm, my garden, my cattle, and my family, which before entirely
+possessed me, were nothing to me, had no relish, and were like
+music to one that has no ear, or food to one that has no taste. In
+a word, I resolved to leave off housekeeping, let my farm, and
+return to London; and in a few months after I did so.
+
+When I came to London, I was still as uneasy as I was before; I had
+no relish for the place, no employment in it, nothing to do but to
+saunter about like an idle person, of whom it may be said he is
+perfectly useless in God's creation, and it is not one farthing's
+matter to the rest of his kind whether he be dead or alive. This
+also was the thing which, of all circumstances of life, was the
+most my aversion, who had been all my days used to an active life;
+and I would often say to myself, "A state of idleness is the very
+dregs of life;" and, indeed, I thought I was much more suitably
+employed when I was twenty-six days making a deal board.
+
+It was now the beginning of the year 1693, when my nephew, whom, as
+I have observed before, I had brought up to the sea, and had made
+him commander of a ship, was come home from a short voyage to
+Bilbao, being the first he had made. He came to me, and told me
+that some merchants of his acquaintance had been proposing to him
+to go a voyage for them to the East Indies, and to China, as
+private traders. "And now, uncle," says he, "if you will go to sea
+with me, I will engage to land you upon your old habitation in the
+island; for we are to touch at the Brazils."
+
+Nothing can be a greater demonstration of a future state, and of
+the existence of an invisible world, than the concurrence of second
+causes with the idea of things which we form in our minds,
+perfectly reserved, and not communicated to any in the world.
+
+My nephew knew nothing how far my distemper of wandering was
+returned upon me, and I knew nothing of what he had in his thought
+to say, when that very morning, before he came to me, I had, in a
+great deal of confusion of thought, and revolving every part of my
+circumstances in my mind, come to this resolution, that I would go
+to Lisbon, and consult with my old sea-captain; and if it was
+rational and practicable, I would go and see the island again, and
+what was become of my people there. I had pleased myself with the
+thoughts of peopling the place, and carrying inhabitants from
+hence, getting a patent for the possession and I know not what;
+when, in the middle of all this, in comes my nephew, as I have
+said, with his project of carrying me thither in his way to the
+East Indies.
+
+I paused a while at his words, and looking steadily at him, "What
+devil," said I, "sent you on this unlucky errand?" My nephew
+stared as if he had been frightened at first; but perceiving that I
+was not much displeased at the proposal, he recovered himself. "I
+hope it may not be an unlucky proposal, sir," says he. "I daresay
+you would be pleased to see your new colony there, where you once
+reigned with more felicity than most of your brother monarchs in
+the world." In a word, the scheme hit so exactly with my temper,
+that is to say, the prepossession I was under, and of which I have
+said so much, that I told him, in a few words, if he agreed with
+the merchants, I would go with him; but I told him I would not
+promise to go any further than my own island. "Why, sir," says he,
+"you don't want to be left there again, I hope?" "But," said I,
+"can you not take me up again on your return?" He told me it would
+not be possible to do so; that the merchants would never allow him
+to come that way with a laden ship of such value, it being a
+month's sail out of his way, and might be three or four. "Besides,
+sir, if I should miscarry," said he, "and not return at all, then
+you would be just reduced to the condition you were in before."
+
+This was very rational; but we both found out a remedy for it,
+which was to carry a framed sloop on board the ship, which, being
+taken in pieces, might, by the help of some carpenters, whom we
+agreed to carry with us, be set up again in the island, and
+finished fit to go to sea in a few days. I was not long resolving,
+for indeed the importunities of my nephew joined so effectually
+with my inclination that nothing could oppose me; on the other
+hand, my wife being dead, none concerned themselves so much for me
+as to persuade me one way or the other, except my ancient good
+friend the widow, who earnestly struggled with me to consider my
+years, my easy circumstances, and the needless hazards of a long
+voyage; and above all, my young children. But it was all to no
+purpose, I had an irresistible desire for the voyage; and I told
+her I thought there was something so uncommon in the impressions I
+had upon my mind, that it would be a kind of resisting Providence
+if I should attempt to stay at home; after which she ceased her
+expostulations, and joined with me, not only in making provision
+for my voyage, but also in settling my family affairs for my
+absence, and providing for the education of my children. In order
+to do this, I made my will, and settled the estate I had in such a
+manner for my children, and placed in such hands, that I was
+perfectly easy and satisfied they would have justice done them,
+whatever might befall me; and for their education, I left it wholly
+to the widow, with a sufficient maintenance to herself for her
+care: all which she richly deserved; for no mother could have
+taken more care in their education, or understood it better; and as
+she lived till I came home, I also lived to thank her for it.
+
+My nephew was ready to sail about the beginning of January 1694-5;
+and I, with my man Friday, went on board, in the Downs, the 8th;
+having, besides that sloop which I mentioned above, a very
+considerable cargo of all kinds of necessary things for my colony,
+which, if I did not find in good condition, I resolved to leave so.
+
+First, I carried with me some servants whom I purposed to place
+there as inhabitants, or at least to set on work there upon my
+account while I stayed, and either to leave them there or carry
+them forward, as they should appear willing; particularly, I
+carried two carpenters, a smith, and a very handy, ingenious
+fellow, who was a cooper by trade, and was also a general mechanic;
+for he was dexterous at making wheels and hand-mills to grind corn,
+was a good turner and a good pot-maker; he also made anything that
+was proper to make of earth or of wood: in a word, we called him
+our Jack-of-all-trades. With these I carried a tailor, who had
+offered himself to go a passenger to the East Indies with my
+nephew, but afterwards consented to stay on our new plantation, and
+who proved a most necessary handy fellow as could be desired in
+many other businesses besides that of his trade; for, as I observed
+formerly, necessity arms us for all employments.
+
+My cargo, as near as I can recollect, for I have not kept account
+of the particulars, consisted of a sufficient quantity of linen,
+and some English thin stuffs, for clothing the Spaniards that I
+expected to find there; and enough of them, as by my calculation
+might comfortably supply them for seven years; if I remember right,
+the materials I carried for clothing them, with gloves, hats,
+shoes, stockings, and all such things as they could want for
+wearing, amounted to about two hundred pounds, including some beds,
+bedding, and household stuff, particularly kitchen utensils, with
+pots, kettles, pewter, brass, &c.; and near a hundred pounds more
+in ironwork, nails, tools of every kind, staples, hooks, hinges,
+and every necessary thing I could think of.
+
+I carried also a hundred spare arms, muskets, and fusees; besides
+some pistols, a considerable quantity of shot of all sizes, three
+or four tons of lead, and two pieces of brass cannon; and, because
+I knew not what time and what extremities I was providing for, I
+carried a hundred barrels of powder, besides swords, cutlasses, and
+the iron part of some pikes and halberds. In short, we had a large
+magazine of all sorts of store; and I made my nephew carry two
+small quarter-deck guns more than he wanted for his ship, to leave
+behind if there was occasion; so that when we came there we might
+build a fort and man it against all sorts of enemies. Indeed, I at
+first thought there would be need enough for all, and much more, if
+we hoped to maintain our possession of the island, as shall be seen
+in the course of that story.
+
+I had not such bad luck in this voyage as I had been used to meet
+with, and therefore shall have the less occasion to interrupt the
+reader, who perhaps may be impatient to hear how matters went with
+my colony; yet some odd accidents, cross winds and bad weather
+happened on this first setting out, which made the voyage longer
+than I expected it at first; and I, who had never made but one
+voyage, my first voyage to Guinea, in which I might be said to come
+back again, as the voyage was at first designed, began to think the
+same ill fate attended me, and that I was born to be never
+contented with being on shore, and yet to be always unfortunate at
+sea. Contrary winds first put us to the northward, and we were
+obliged to put in at Galway, in Ireland, where we lay wind-bound
+two-and-twenty days; but we had this satisfaction with the
+disaster, that provisions were here exceeding cheap, and in the
+utmost plenty; so that while we lay here we never touched the
+ship's stores, but rather added to them. Here, also, I took in
+several live hogs, and two cows with their calves, which I
+resolved, if I had a good passage, to put on shore in my island;
+but we found occasion to dispose otherwise of them.
+
+We set out on the 5th of February from Ireland, and had a very fair
+gale of wind for some days. As I remember, it might be about the
+20th of February in the evening late, when the mate, having the
+watch, came into the round-house and told us he saw a flash of
+fire, and heard a gun fired; and while he was telling us of it, a
+boy came in and told us the boatswain heard another. This made us
+all run out upon the quarter-deck, where for a while we heard
+nothing; but in a few minutes we saw a very great light, and found
+that there was some very terrible fire at a distance; immediately
+we had recourse to our reckonings, in which we all agreed that
+there could be no land that way in which the fire showed itself,
+no, not for five hundred leagues, for it appeared at WNW. Upon
+this, we concluded it must be some ship on fire at sea; and as, by
+our hearing the noise of guns just before, we concluded that it
+could not be far off, we stood directly towards it, and were
+presently satisfied we should discover it, because the further we
+sailed, the greater the light appeared; though, the weather being
+hazy, we could not perceive anything but the light for a while. In
+about half-an-hour's sailing, the wind being fair for us, though
+not much of it, and the weather clearing up a little, we could
+plainly discern that it was a great ship on fire in the middle of
+the sea.
+
+I was most sensibly touched with this disaster, though not at all
+acquainted with the persons engaged in it; I presently recollected
+my former circumstances, and what condition I was in when taken up
+by the Portuguese captain; and how much more deplorable the
+circumstances of the poor creatures belonging to that ship must be,
+if they had no other ship in company with them. Upon this I
+immediately ordered that five guns should be fired, one soon after
+another, that, if possible, we might give notice to them that there
+was help for them at hand and that they might endeavour to save
+themselves in their boat; for though we could see the flames of the
+ship, yet they, it being night, could see nothing of us.
+
+We lay by some time upon this, only driving as the burning ship
+drove, waiting for daylight; when, on a sudden, to our great
+terror, though we had reason to expect it, the ship blew up in the
+air; and in a few minutes all the fire was out, that is to say, the
+rest of the ship sunk. This was a terrible, and indeed an
+afflicting sight, for the sake of the poor men, who, I concluded,
+must be either all destroyed in the ship, or be in the utmost
+distress in their boat, in the middle of the ocean; which, at
+present, as it was dark, I could not see. However, to direct them
+as well as I could, I caused lights to be hung out in all parts of
+the ship where we could, and which we had lanterns for, and kept
+firing guns all the night long, letting them know by this that
+there was a ship not far off.
+
+About eight o'clock in the morning we discovered the ship's boats
+by the help of our perspective glasses, and found there were two of
+them, both thronged with people, and deep in the water. We
+perceived they rowed, the wind being against them; that they saw
+our ship, and did their utmost to make us see them. We immediately
+spread our ancient, to let them know we saw them, and hung a waft
+out, as a signal for them to come on board, and then made more
+sail, standing directly to them. In little more than half-an-hour
+we came up with them; and took them all in, being no less than
+sixty-four men, women, and children; for there were a great many
+passengers.
+
+Upon inquiry we found it was a French merchant ship of three-
+hundred tons, home-bound from Quebec. The master gave us a long
+account of the distress of his ship; how the fire began in the
+steerage by the negligence of the steersman, which, on his crying
+out for help, was, as everybody thought, entirely put out; but they
+soon found that some sparks of the first fire had got into some
+part of the ship so difficult to come at that they could not
+effectually quench it; and afterwards getting in between the
+timbers, and within the ceiling of the ship, it proceeded into the
+hold, and mastered all the skill and all the application they were
+able to exert.
+
+They had no more to do then but to get into their boats, which, to
+their great comfort, were pretty large; being their long-boat, and
+a great shallop, besides a small skiff, which was of no great
+service to them, other than to get some fresh water and provisions
+into her, after they had secured their lives from the fire. They
+had, indeed, small hopes of their lives by getting into these boats
+at that distance from any land; only, as they said, that they thus
+escaped from the fire, and there was a possibility that some ship
+might happen to be at sea, and might take them in. They had sails,
+oars, and a compass; and had as much provision and water as, with
+sparing it so as to be next door to starving, might support them
+about twelve days, in which, if they had no bad weather and no
+contrary winds, the captain said he hoped he might get to the banks
+of Newfoundland, and might perhaps take some fish, to sustain them
+till they might go on shore. But there were so many chances
+against them in all these cases, such as storms, to overset and
+founder them; rains and cold, to benumb and perish their limbs;
+contrary winds, to keep them out and starve them; that it must have
+been next to miraculous if they had escaped.
+
+In the midst of their consternation, every one being hopeless and
+ready to despair, the captain, with tears in his eyes, told me they
+were on a sudden surprised with the joy of hearing a gun fire, and
+after that four more: these were the five guns which I caused to
+be fired at first seeing the light. This revived their hearts, and
+gave them the notice, which, as above, I desired it should, that
+there was a ship at hand for their help. It was upon the hearing
+of these guns that they took down their masts and sails: the sound
+coming from the windward, they resolved to lie by till morning.
+Some time after this, hearing no more guns, they fired three
+muskets, one a considerable while after another; but these, the
+wind being contrary, we never heard. Some time after that again
+they were still more agreeably surprised with seeing our lights,
+and hearing the guns, which, as I have said, I caused to be fired
+all the rest of the night. This set them to work with their oars,
+to keep their boats ahead, at least that we might the sooner come
+up with them; and at last, to their inexpressible joy, they found
+we saw them.
+
+It is impossible for me to express the several gestures, the
+strange ecstasies, the variety of postures which these poor
+delivered people ran into, to express the joy of their souls at so
+unexpected a deliverance. Grief and fear are easily described:
+sighs, tears, groans, and a very few motions of the head and hands,
+make up the sum of its variety; but an excess of joy, a surprise of
+joy, has a thousand extravagances in it. There were some in tears;
+some raging and tearing themselves, as if they had been in the
+greatest agonies of sorrow; some stark raving and downright
+lunatic; some ran about the ship stamping with their feet, others
+wringing their hands; some were dancing, some singing, some
+laughing, more crying, many quite dumb, not able to speak a word;
+others sick and vomiting; several swooning and ready to faint; and
+a few were crossing themselves and giving God thanks.
+
+I would not wrong them either; there might be many that were
+thankful afterwards; but the passion was too strong for them at
+first, and they were not able to master it: then were thrown into
+ecstasies, and a kind of frenzy, and it was but a very few that
+were composed and serious in their joy. Perhaps also, the case may
+have some addition to it from the particular circumstance of that
+nation they belonged to: I mean the French, whose temper is
+allowed to be more volatile, more passionate, and more sprightly,
+and their spirits more fluid than in other nations. I am not
+philosopher enough to determine the cause; but nothing I had ever
+seen before came up to it. The ecstasies poor Friday, my trusty
+savage, was in when he found his father in the boat came the
+nearest to it; and the surprise of the master and his two
+companions, whom I delivered from the villains that set them on
+shore in the island, came a little way towards it; but nothing was
+to compare to this, either that I saw in Friday, or anywhere else
+in my life.
+
+It is further observable, that these extravagances did not show
+themselves in that different manner I have mentioned, in different
+persons only; but all the variety would appear, in a short
+succession of moments, in one and the same person. A man that we
+saw this minute dumb, and, as it were, stupid and confounded, would
+the next minute be dancing and hallooing like an antic; and the
+next moment be tearing his hair, or pulling his clothes to pieces,
+and stamping them under his feet like a madman; in a few moments
+after that we would have him all in tears, then sick, swooning,
+and, had not immediate help been had, he would in a few moments
+have been dead. Thus it was, not with one or two, or ten or
+twenty, but with the greatest part of them; and, if I remember
+right, our surgeon was obliged to let blood of about thirty
+persons.
+
+There were two priests among them: one an old man, and the other a
+young man; and that which was strangest was, the oldest man was the
+worst. As soon as he set his foot on board our ship, and saw
+himself safe, he dropped down stone dead to all appearance. Not
+the least sign of life could be perceived in him; our surgeon
+immediately applied proper remedies to recover him, and was the
+only man in the ship that believed he was not dead. At length he
+opened a vein in his arm, having first chafed and rubbed the part,
+so as to warm it as much as possible. Upon this the blood, which
+only dropped at first, flowing freely, in three minutes after the
+man opened his eyes; a quarter of an hour after that he spoke, grew
+better, and after the blood was stopped, he walked about, told us
+he was perfectly well, and took a dram of cordial which the surgeon
+gave him. About a quarter of an hour after this they came running
+into the cabin to the surgeon, who was bleeding a Frenchwoman that
+had fainted, and told him the priest was gone stark mad. It seems
+he had begun to revolve the change of his circumstances in his
+mind, and again this put him into an ecstasy of joy. His spirits
+whirled about faster than the vessels could convey them, the blood
+grew hot and feverish, and the man was as fit for Bedlam as any
+creature that ever was in it. The surgeon would not bleed him
+again in that condition, but gave him something to doze and put him
+to sleep; which, after some time, operated upon him, and he awoke
+next morning perfectly composed and well. The younger priest
+behaved with great command of his passions, and was really an
+example of a serious, well-governed mind. At his first coming on
+board the ship he threw himself flat on his face, prostrating
+himself in thankfulness for his deliverance, in which I unhappily
+and unseasonably disturbed him, really thinking he had been in a
+swoon; but he spoke calmly, thanked me, told me he was giving God
+thanks for his deliverance, begged me to leave him a few moments,
+and that, next to his Maker, he would give me thanks also. I was
+heartily sorry that I disturbed him, and not only left him, but
+kept others from interrupting him also. He continued in that
+posture about three minutes, or little more, after I left him, then
+came to me, as he had said he would, and with a great deal of
+seriousness and affection, but with tears in his eyes, thanked me,
+that had, under God, given him and so many miserable creatures
+their lives. I told him I had no need to tell him to thank God for
+it, rather than me, for I had seen that he had done that already;
+but I added that it was nothing but what reason and humanity
+dictated to all men, and that we had as much reason as he to give
+thanks to God, who had blessed us so far as to make us the
+instruments of His mercy to so many of His creatures. After this
+the young priest applied himself to his countrymen, and laboured to
+compose them: he persuaded, entreated, argued, reasoned with them,
+and did his utmost to keep them within the exercise of their
+reason; and with some he had success, though others were for a time
+out of all government of themselves.
+
+I cannot help committing this to writing, as perhaps it may be
+useful to those into whose hands it may fall, for guiding
+themselves in the extravagances of their passions; for if an excess
+of joy can carry men out to such a length beyond the reach of their
+reason, what will not the extravagances of anger, rage, and a
+provoked mind carry us to? And, indeed, here I saw reason for
+keeping an exceeding watch over our passions of every kind, as well
+those of joy and satisfaction as those of sorrow and anger.
+
+We were somewhat disordered by these extravagances among our new
+guests for the first day; but after they had retired to lodgings
+provided for them as well as our ship would allow, and had slept
+heartily--as most of them did, being fatigued and frightened--they
+were quite another sort of people the next day. Nothing of good
+manners, or civil acknowledgments for the kindness shown them, was
+wanting; the French, it is known, are naturally apt enough to
+exceed that way. The captain and one of the priests came to me the
+next day, and desired to speak with me and my nephew; the commander
+began to consult with us what should be done with them; and first,
+they told us we had saved their lives, so all they had was little
+enough for a return to us for that kindness received. The captain
+said they had saved some money and some things of value in their
+boats, caught hastily out of the flames, and if we would accept it
+they were ordered to make an offer of it all to us; they only
+desired to be set on shore somewhere in our way, where, if
+possible, they might get a passage to France. My nephew wished to
+accept their money at first word, and to consider what to do with
+them afterwards; but I overruled him in that part, for I knew what
+it was to be set on shore in a strange country; and if the
+Portuguese captain that took me up at sea had served me so, and
+taken all I had for my deliverance, I must have been starved, or
+have been as much a slave at the Brazils as I had been at Barbary,
+the mere being sold to a Mahometan excepted; and perhaps a
+Portuguese is not a much better master than a Turk, if not in some
+cases much worse.
+
+I therefore told the French captain that we had taken them up in
+their distress, it was true, but that it was our duty to do so, as
+we were fellow-creatures; and we would desire to be so delivered if
+we were in the like or any other extremity; that we had done
+nothing for them but what we believed they would have done for us
+if we had been in their case and they in ours; but that we took
+them up to save them, not to plunder them; and it would be a most
+barbarous thing to take that little from them which they had saved
+out of the fire, and then set them on shore and leave them; that
+this would be first to save them from death, and then kill them
+ourselves: save them from drowning, and abandon them to starving;
+and therefore I would not let the least thing be taken from them.
+As to setting them on shore, I told them indeed that was an
+exceeding difficulty to us, for that the ship was bound to the East
+Indies; and though we were driven out of our course to the westward
+a very great way, and perhaps were directed by Heaven on purpose
+for their deliverance, yet it was impossible for us wilfully to
+change our voyage on their particular account; nor could my nephew,
+the captain, answer it to the freighters, with whom he was under
+charter to pursue his voyage by way of Brazil; and all I knew we
+could do for them was to put ourselves in the way of meeting with
+other ships homeward bound from the West Indies, and get them a
+passage, if possible, to England or France.
+
+The first part of the proposal was so generous and kind they could
+not but be very thankful for it; but they were in very great
+consternation, especially the passengers, at the notion of being
+carried away to the East Indies; they then entreated me that as I
+was driven so far to the westward before I met with them, I would
+at least keep on the same course to the banks of Newfoundland,
+where it was probable I might meet with some ship or sloop that
+they might hire to carry them back to Canada.
+
+I thought this was but a reasonable request on their part, and
+therefore I inclined to agree to it; for indeed I considered that
+to carry this whole company to the East Indies would not only be an
+intolerable severity upon the poor people, but would be ruining our
+whole voyage by devouring all our provisions; so I thought it no
+breach of charter-party, but what an unforeseen accident made
+absolutely necessary to us, and in which no one could say we were
+to blame; for the laws of God and nature would have forbid that we
+should refuse to take up two boats full of people in such a
+distressed condition; and the nature of the thing, as well
+respecting ourselves as the poor people, obliged us to set them on
+shore somewhere or other for their deliverance. So I consented
+that we would carry them to Newfoundland, if wind and weather would
+permit: and if not, I would carry them to Martinico, in the West
+Indies.
+
+The wind continued fresh easterly, but the weather pretty good; and
+as the winds had continued in the points between NE. and SE. a long
+time, we missed several opportunities of sending them to France;
+for we met several ships bound to Europe, whereof two were French,
+from St. Christopher's, but they had been so long beating up
+against the wind that they durst take in no passengers, for fear of
+wanting provisions for the voyage, as well for themselves as for
+those they should take in; so we were obliged to go on. It was
+about a week after this that we made the banks of Newfoundland;
+where, to shorten my story, we put all our French people on board a
+bark, which they hired at sea there, to put them on shore, and
+afterwards to carry them to France, if they could get provisions to
+victual themselves with. When I say all the French went on shore,
+I should remember that the young priest I spoke of, hearing we were
+bound to the East Indies, desired to go the voyage with us, and to
+be set on shore on the coast of Coromandel; which I readily agreed
+to, for I wonderfully liked the man, and had very good reason, as
+will appear afterwards; also four of the seamen entered themselves
+on our ship, and proved very useful fellows.
+
+From hence we directed our course for the West Indies, steering
+away S. and S. by E. for about twenty days together, sometimes
+little or no wind at all; when we met with another subject for our
+humanity to work upon, almost as deplorable as that before.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II-- INTERVENING HISTORY OF COLONY
+
+
+
+It was in the latitude of 27 degrees 5 minutes N., on the 19th day
+of March 1694-95, when we spied a sail, our course SE. and by S.
+We soon perceived it was a large vessel, and that she bore up to
+us, but could not at first know what to make of her, till, after
+coming a little nearer, we found she had lost her main-topmast,
+fore-mast, and bowsprit; and presently she fired a gun as a signal
+of distress. The weather was pretty good, wind at NNW. a fresh
+gale, and we soon came to speak with her. We found her a ship of
+Bristol, bound home from Barbadoes, but had been blown out of the
+road at Barbadoes a few days before she was ready to sail, by a
+terrible hurricane, while the captain and chief mate were both gone
+on shore; so that, besides the terror of the storm, they were in an
+indifferent case for good mariners to bring the ship home. They
+had been already nine weeks at sea, and had met with another
+terrible storm, after the hurricane was over, which had blown them
+quite out of their knowledge to the westward, and in which they
+lost their masts. They told us they expected to have seen the
+Bahama Islands, but were then driven away again to the south-east,
+by a strong gale of wind at NNW., the same that blew now: and
+having no sails to work the ship with but a main course, and a kind
+of square sail upon a jury fore-mast, which they had set up, they
+could not lie near the wind, but were endeavouring to stand away
+for the Canaries.
+
+But that which was worst of all was, that they were almost starved
+for want of provisions, besides the fatigues they had undergone;
+their bread and flesh were quite gone--they had not one ounce left
+in the ship, and had had none for eleven days. The only relief
+they had was, their water was not all spent, and they had about
+half a barrel of flour left; they had sugar enough; some succades,
+or sweetmeats, they had at first, but these were all devoured; and
+they had seven casks of rum. There was a youth and his mother and
+a maid-servant on board, who were passengers, and thinking the ship
+was ready to sail, unhappily came on board the evening before the
+hurricane began; and having no provisions of their own left, they
+were in a more deplorable condition than the rest: for the seamen
+being reduced to such an extreme necessity themselves, had no
+compassion, we may be sure, for the poor passengers; and they were,
+indeed, in such a condition that their misery is very hard to
+describe.
+
+I had perhaps not known this part, if my curiosity had not led me,
+the weather being fair and the wind abated, to go on board the
+ship. The second mate, who upon this occasion commanded the ship,
+had been on board our ship, and he told me they had three
+passengers in the great cabin that were in a deplorable condition.
+"Nay," says he, "I believe they are dead, for I have heard nothing
+of them for above two days; and I was afraid to inquire after
+them," said he, "for I had nothing to relieve them with." We
+immediately applied ourselves to give them what relief we could
+spare; and indeed I had so far overruled things with my nephew,
+that I would have victualled them though we had gone away to
+Virginia, or any other part of the coast of America, to have
+supplied ourselves; but there was no necessity for that.
+
+But now they were in a new danger; for they were afraid of eating
+too much, even of that little we gave them. The mate, or
+commander, brought six men with him in his boat; but these poor
+wretches looked like skeletons, and were so weak that they could
+hardly sit to their oars. The mate himself was very ill, and half
+starved; for he declared he had reserved nothing from the men, and
+went share and share alike with them in every bit they ate. I
+cautioned him to eat sparingly, and set meat before him
+immediately, but he had not eaten three mouthfuls before he began
+to be sick and out of order; so he stopped a while, and our surgeon
+mixed him up something with some broth, which he said would be to
+him both food and physic; and after he had taken it he grew better.
+In the meantime I forgot not the men. I ordered victuals to be
+given them, and the poor creatures rather devoured than ate it:
+they were so exceedingly hungry that they were in a manner
+ravenous, and had no command of themselves; and two of them ate
+with so much greediness that they were in danger of their lives the
+next morning. The sight of these people's distress was very moving
+to me, and brought to mind what I had a terrible prospect of at my
+first coming on shore in my island, where I had not the least
+mouthful of food, or any prospect of procuring any; besides the
+hourly apprehensions I had of being made the food of other
+creatures. But all the while the mate was thus relating to me the
+miserable condition of the ship's company, I could not put out of
+my thought the story he had told me of the three poor creatures in
+the great cabin, viz. the mother, her son, and the maid-servant,
+whom he had heard nothing of for two or three days, and whom, he
+seemed to confess, they had wholly neglected, their own extremities
+being so great; by which I understood that they had really given
+them no food at all, and that therefore they must be perished, and
+be all lying dead, perhaps, on the floor or deck of the cabin.
+
+As I therefore kept the mate, whom we then called captain, on board
+with his men, to refresh them, so I also forgot not the starving
+crew that were left on board, but ordered my own boat to go on
+board the ship, and, with my mate and twelve men, to carry them a
+sack of bread, and four or five pieces of beef to boil. Our
+surgeon charged the men to cause the meat to be boiled while they
+stayed, and to keep guard in the cook-room, to prevent the men
+taking it to eat raw, or taking it out of the pot before it was
+well boiled, and then to give every man but a very little at a
+time: and by this caution he preserved the men, who would
+otherwise have killed themselves with that very food that was given
+them on purpose to save their lives.
+
+At the same time I ordered the mate to go into the great cabin, and
+see what condition the poor passengers were in; and if they were
+alive, to comfort them, and give them what refreshment was proper:
+and the surgeon gave him a large pitcher, with some of the prepared
+broth which he had given the mate that was on board, and which he
+did not question would restore them gradually. I was not satisfied
+with this; but, as I said above, having a great mind to see the
+scene of misery which I knew the ship itself would present me with,
+in a more lively manner than I could have it by report, I took the
+captain of the ship, as we now called him, with me, and went
+myself, a little after, in their boat.
+
+I found the poor men on board almost in a tumult to get the
+victuals out of the boiler before it was ready; but my mate
+observed his orders, and kept a good guard at the cook-room door,
+and the man he placed there, after using all possible persuasion to
+have patience, kept them off by force; however, he caused some
+biscuit-cakes to be dipped in the pot, and softened with the liquor
+of the meat, which they called brewis, and gave them every one some
+to stay their stomachs, and told them it was for their own safety
+that he was obliged to give them but little at a time. But it was
+all in vain; and had I not come on board, and their own commander
+and officers with me, and with good words, and some threats also of
+giving them no more, I believe they would have broken into the
+cook-room by force, and torn the meat out of the furnace--for words
+are indeed of very small force to a hungry belly; however, we
+pacified them, and fed them gradually and cautiously at first, and
+the next time gave them more, and at last filled their bellies, and
+the men did well enough.
+
+But the misery of the poor passengers in the cabin was of another
+nature, and far beyond the rest; for as, first, the ship's company
+had so little for themselves, it was but too true that they had at
+first kept them very low, and at last totally neglected them: so
+that for six or seven days it might be said they had really no food
+at all, and for several days before very little. The poor mother,
+who, as the men reported, was a woman of sense and good breeding,
+had spared all she could so affectionately for her son, that at
+last she entirely sank under it; and when the mate of our ship went
+in, she sat upon the floor on deck, with her back up against the
+sides, between two chairs, which were lashed fast, and her head
+sunk between her shoulders like a corpse, though not quite dead.
+My mate said all he could to revive and encourage her, and with a
+spoon put some broth into her mouth. She opened her lips, and
+lifted up one hand, but could not speak: yet she understood what
+he said, and made signs to him, intimating, that it was too late
+for her, but pointed to her child, as if she would have said they
+should take care of him. However, the mate, who was exceedingly
+moved at the sight, endeavoured to get some of the broth into her
+mouth, and, as he said, got two or three spoonfuls down--though I
+question whether he could be sure of it or not; but it was too
+late, and she died the same night.
+
+The youth, who was preserved at the price of his most affectionate
+mother's life, was not so far gone; yet he lay in a cabin bed, as
+one stretched out, with hardly any life left in him. He had a
+piece of an old glove in his mouth, having eaten up the rest of it;
+however, being young, and having more strength than his mother, the
+mate got something down his throat, and he began sensibly to
+revive; though by giving him, some time after, but two or three
+spoonfuls extraordinary, he was very sick, and brought it up again.
+
+But the next care was the poor maid: she lay all along upon the
+deck, hard by her mistress, and just like one that had fallen down
+in a fit of apoplexy, and struggled for life. Her limbs were
+distorted; one of her hands was clasped round the frame of the
+chair, and she gripped it so hard that we could not easily make her
+let it go; her other arm lay over her head, and her feet lay both
+together, set fast against the frame of the cabin table: in short,
+she lay just like one in the agonies of death, and yet she was
+alive too. The poor creature was not only starved with hunger, and
+terrified with the thoughts of death, but, as the men told us
+afterwards, was broken-hearted for her mistress, whom she saw dying
+for two or three days before, and whom she loved most tenderly. We
+knew not what to do with this poor girl; for when our surgeon, who
+was a man of very great knowledge and experience, had, with great
+application, recovered her as to life, he had her upon his hands
+still; for she was little less than distracted for a considerable
+time after.
+
+Whoever shall read these memorandums must be desired to consider
+that visits at sea are not like a journey into the country, where
+sometimes people stay a week or a fortnight at a place. Our
+business was to relieve this distressed ship's crew, but not lie by
+for them; and though they were willing to steer the same course
+with us for some days, yet we could carry no sail to keep pace with
+a ship that had no masts. However, as their captain begged of us
+to help him to set up a main-topmast, and a kind of a topmast to
+his jury fore-mast, we did, as it were, lie by him for three or
+four days; and then, having given him five barrels of beef, a
+barrel of pork, two hogsheads of biscuit, and a proportion of peas,
+flour, and what other things we could spare; and taking three casks
+of sugar, some rum, and some pieces of eight from them for
+satisfaction, we left them, taking on board with us, at their own
+earnest request, the youth and the maid, and all their goods.
+
+The young lad was about seventeen years of age, a pretty, well-
+bred, modest, and sensible youth, greatly dejected with the loss of
+his mother, and also at having lost his father but a few months
+before, at Barbadoes. He begged of the surgeon to speak to me to
+take him out of the ship; for he said the cruel fellows had
+murdered his mother: and indeed so they had, that is to say,
+passively; for they might have spared a small sustenance to the
+poor helpless widow, though it had been but just enough to keep her
+alive; but hunger knows no friend, no relation, no justice, no
+right, and therefore is remorseless, and capable of no compassion.
+
+The surgeon told him how far we were going, and that it would carry
+him away from all his friends, and put him, perhaps, in as bad
+circumstances almost as those we found him in, that is to say,
+starving in the world. He said it mattered not whither he went, if
+he was but delivered from the terrible crew that he was among; that
+the captain (by which he meant me, for he could know nothing of my
+nephew) had saved his life, and he was sure would not hurt him; and
+as for the maid, he was sure, if she came to herself, she would be
+very thankful for it, let us carry them where we would. The
+surgeon represented the case so affectionately to me that I
+yielded, and we took them both on board, with all their goods,
+except eleven hogsheads of sugar, which could not be removed or
+come at; and as the youth had a bill of lading for them, I made his
+commander sign a writing, obliging himself to go, as soon as he
+came to Bristol, to one Mr. Rogers, a merchant there, to whom the
+youth said he was related, and to deliver a letter which I wrote to
+him, and all the goods he had belonging to the deceased widow;
+which, I suppose, was not done, for I could never learn that the
+ship came to Bristol, but was, as is most probable, lost at sea,
+being in so disabled a condition, and so far from any land, that I
+am of opinion the first storm she met with afterwards she might
+founder, for she was leaky, and had damage in her hold when we met
+with her.
+
+I was now in the latitude of 19 degrees 32 minutes, and had
+hitherto a tolerable voyage as to weather, though at first the
+winds had been contrary. I shall trouble nobody with the little
+incidents of wind, weather, currents, &c., on the rest of our
+voyage; but to shorten my story, shall observe that I came to my
+old habitation, the island, on the 10th of April 1695. It was with
+no small difficulty that I found the place; for as I came to it and
+went to it before on the south and east side of the island, coming
+from the Brazils, so now, coming in between the main and the
+island, and having no chart for the coast, nor any landmark, I did
+not know it when I saw it, or, know whether I saw it or not. We
+beat about a great while, and went on shore on several islands in
+the mouth of the great river Orinoco, but none for my purpose; only
+this I learned by my coasting the shore, that I was under one great
+mistake before, viz. that the continent which I thought I saw from
+the island I lived in was really no continent, but a long island,
+or rather a ridge of islands, reaching from one to the other side
+of the extended mouth of that great river; and that the savages who
+came to my island were not properly those which we call Caribbees,
+but islanders, and other barbarians of the same kind, who inhabited
+nearer to our side than the rest.
+
+In short, I visited several of these islands to no purpose; some I
+found were inhabited, and some were not; on one of them I found
+some Spaniards, and thought they had lived there; but speaking with
+them, found they had a sloop lying in a small creek hard by, and
+came thither to make salt, and to catch some pearl-mussels if they
+could; but that they belonged to the Isle de Trinidad, which lay
+farther north, in the latitude of 10 and 11 degrees.
+
+Thus coasting from one island to another, sometimes with the ship,
+sometimes with the Frenchman's shallop, which we had found a
+convenient boat, and therefore kept her with their very good will,
+at length I came fair on the south side of my island, and presently
+knew the very countenance of the place: so I brought the ship safe
+to an anchor, broadside with the little creek where my old
+habitation was. As soon as I saw the place I called for Friday,
+and asked him if he knew where he was? He looked about a little,
+and presently clapping his hands, cried, "Oh yes, Oh there, Oh yes,
+Oh there!" pointing to our old habitation, and fell dancing and
+capering like a mad fellow; and I had much ado to keep him from
+jumping into the sea to swim ashore to the place.
+
+"Well, Friday," says I, "do you think we shall find anybody here or
+no? and do you think we shall see your father?" The fellow stood
+mute as a stock a good while; but when I named his father, the poor
+affectionate creature looked dejected, and I could see the tears
+run down his face very plentifully. "What is the matter, Friday?
+are you troubled because you may see your father?" "No, no," says
+he, shaking his head, "no see him more: no, never more see him
+again." "Why so, Friday? how do you know that?" "Oh no, Oh no,"
+says Friday, "he long ago die, long ago; he much old man." "Well,
+well, Friday, you don't know; but shall we see any one else, then?"
+The fellow, it seems, had better eyes than I, and he points to the
+hill just above my old house; and though we lay half a league off,
+he cries out, "We see! we see! yes, we see much man there, and
+there, and there." I looked, but I saw nobody, no, not with a
+perspective glass, which was, I suppose, because I could not hit
+the place: for the fellow was right, as I found upon inquiry the
+next day; and there were five or six men all together, who stood to
+look at the ship, not knowing what to think of us.
+
+As soon as Friday told me he saw people, I caused the English
+ancient to be spread, and fired three guns, to give them notice we
+were friends; and in about a quarter of an hour after we perceived
+a smoke arise from the side of the creek; so I immediately ordered
+the boat out, taking Friday with me, and hanging out a white flag,
+I went directly on shore, taking with me the young friar I
+mentioned, to whom I had told the story of my living there, and the
+manner of it, and every particular both of myself and those I left
+there, and who was on that account extremely desirous to go with
+me. We had, besides, about sixteen men well armed, if we had found
+any new guests there which we did not know of; but we had no need
+of weapons.
+
+As we went on shore upon the tide of flood, near high water, we
+rowed directly into the creek; and the first man I fixed my eye
+upon was the Spaniard whose life I had saved, and whom I knew by
+his face perfectly well: as to his habit, I shall describe it
+afterwards. I ordered nobody to go on shore at first but myself;
+but there was no keeping Friday in the boat, for the affectionate
+creature had spied his father at a distance, a good way off the
+Spaniards, where, indeed, I saw nothing of him; and if they had not
+let him go ashore, he would have jumped into the sea. He was no
+sooner on shore, but he flew away to his father like an arrow out
+of a bow. It would have made any man shed tears, in spite of the
+firmest resolution, to have seen the first transports of this poor
+fellow's joy when he came to his father: how he embraced him,
+kissed him, stroked his face, took him up in his arms, set him down
+upon a tree, and lay down by him; then stood and looked at him, as
+any one would look at a strange picture, for a quarter of an hour
+together; then lay down on the ground, and stroked his legs, and
+kissed them, and then got up again and stared at him; one would
+have thought the fellow bewitched. But it would have made a dog
+laugh the next day to see how his passion ran out another way: in
+the morning he walked along the shore with his father several
+hours, always leading him by the hand, as if he had been a lady;
+and every now and then he would come to the boat to fetch something
+or other for him, either a lump of sugar, a dram, a biscuit, or
+something or other that was good. In the afternoon his frolics ran
+another way; for then he would set the old man down upon the
+ground, and dance about him, and make a thousand antic gestures;
+and all the while he did this he would be talking to him, and
+telling him one story or another of his travels, and of what had
+happened to him abroad to divert him. In short, if the same filial
+affection was to be found in Christians to their parents in our
+part of the world, one would be tempted to say there would hardly
+have been any need of the fifth commandment.
+
+But this is a digression: I return to my landing. It would be
+needless to take notice of all the ceremonies and civilities that
+the Spaniards received me with. The first Spaniard, whom, as I
+said, I knew very well, was he whose life I had saved. He came
+towards the boat, attended by one more, carrying a flag of truce
+also; and he not only did not know me at first, but he had no
+thoughts, no notion of its being me that was come, till I spoke to
+him. "Seignior," said I, in Portuguese, "do you not know me?" At
+which he spoke not a word, but giving his musket to the man that
+was with him, threw his arms abroad, saying something in Spanish
+that I did not perfectly hear, came forward and embraced me,
+telling me he was inexcusable not to know that face again that he
+had once seen, as of an angel from heaven sent to save his life; he
+said abundance of very handsome things, as a well-bred Spaniard
+always knows how, and then, beckoning to the person that attended
+him, bade him go and call out his comrades. He then asked me if I
+would walk to my old habitation, where he would give me possession
+of my own house again, and where I should see they had made but
+mean improvements. I walked along with him, but, alas! I could no
+more find the place than if I had never been there; for they had
+planted so many trees, and placed them in such a position, so thick
+and close to one another, and in ten years' time they were grown so
+big, that the place was inaccessible, except by such windings and
+blind ways as they themselves only, who made them, could find.
+
+I asked them what put them upon all these fortifications; he told
+me I would say there was need enough of it when they had given me
+an account how they had passed their time since their arriving in
+the island, especially after they had the misfortune to find that I
+was gone. He told me he could not but have some pleasure in my
+good fortune, when he heard that I was gone in a good ship, and to
+my satisfaction; and that he had oftentimes a strong persuasion
+that one time or other he should see me again, but nothing that
+ever befell him in his life, he said, was so surprising and
+afflicting to him at first as the disappointment he was under when
+he came back to the island and found I was not there.
+
+As to the three barbarians (so he called them) that were left
+behind, and of whom, he said, he had a long story to tell me, the
+Spaniards all thought themselves much better among the savages,
+only that their number was so small: "And," says he, "had they
+been strong enough, we had been all long ago in purgatory;" and
+with that he crossed himself on the breast. "But, sir," says he,
+"I hope you will not be displeased when I shall tell you how,
+forced by necessity, we were obliged for our own preservation to
+disarm them, and make them our subjects, as they would not be
+content with being moderately our masters, but would be our
+murderers." I answered I was afraid of it when I left them there,
+and nothing troubled me at my parting from the island but that they
+were not come back, that I might have put them in possession of
+everything first, and left the others in a state of subjection, as
+they deserved; but if they had reduced them to it I was very glad,
+and should be very far from finding any fault with it; for I knew
+they were a parcel of refractory, ungoverned villains, and were fit
+for any manner of mischief.
+
+While I was saying this, the man came whom he had sent back, and
+with him eleven more. In the dress they were in it was impossible
+to guess what nation they were of; but he made all clear, both to
+them and to me. First, he turned to me, and pointing to them,
+said, "These, sir, are some of the gentlemen who owe their lives to
+you;" and then turning to them, and pointing to me, he let them
+know who I was; upon which they all came up, one by one, not as if
+they had been sailors, and ordinary fellows, and the like, but
+really as if they had been ambassadors or noblemen, and I a monarch
+or great conqueror: their behaviour was, to the last degree,
+obliging and courteous, and yet mixed with a manly, majestic
+gravity, which very well became them; and, in short, they had so
+much more manners than I, that I scarce knew how to receive their
+civilities, much less how to return them in kind.
+
+The history of their coming to, and conduct in, the island after my
+going away is so very remarkable, and has so many incidents which
+the former part of my relation will help to understand, and which
+will in most of the particulars, refer to the account I have
+already given, that I cannot but commit them, with great delight,
+to the reading of those that come after me.
+
+In order to do this as intelligibly as I can, I must go back to the
+circumstances in which I left the island, and the persons on it, of
+whom I am to speak. And first, it is necessary to repeat that I
+had sent away Friday's father and the Spaniard (the two whose lives
+I had rescued from the savages) in a large canoe to the main, as I
+then thought it, to fetch over the Spaniard's companions that he
+left behind him, in order to save them from the like calamity that
+he had been in, and in order to succour them for the present; and
+that, if possible, we might together find some way for our
+deliverance afterwards. When I sent them away I had no visible
+appearance of, or the least room to hope for, my own deliverance,
+any more than I had twenty years before--much less had I any
+foreknowledge of what afterwards happened, I mean, of an English
+ship coming on shore there to fetch me off; and it could not be but
+a very great surprise to them, when they came back, not only to
+find that I was gone, but to find three strangers left on the spot,
+possessed of all that I had left behind me, which would otherwise
+have been their own.
+
+The first thing, however, which I inquired into, that I might begin
+where I left off, was of their own part; and I desired the Spaniard
+would give me a particular account of his voyage back to his
+countrymen with the boat, when I sent him to fetch them over. He
+told me there was little variety in that part, for nothing
+remarkable happened to them on the way, having had very calm
+weather and a smooth sea. As for his countrymen, it could not be
+doubted, he said, but that they were overjoyed to see him (it seems
+he was the principal man among them, the captain of the vessel they
+had been shipwrecked in having been dead some time): they were, he
+said, the more surprised to see him, because they knew that he was
+fallen into the hands of the savages, who, they were satisfied,
+would devour him as they did all the rest of their prisoners; that
+when he told them the story of his deliverance, and in what manner
+he was furnished for carrying them away, it was like a dream to
+them, and their astonishment, he said, was somewhat like that of
+Joseph's brethren when he told them who he was, and the story of
+his exaltation in Pharaoh's court; but when he showed them the
+arms, the powder, the ball, the provisions that he brought them for
+their journey or voyage, they were restored to themselves, took a
+just share of the joy of their deliverance, and immediately
+prepared to come away with him.
+
+Their first business was to get canoes; and in this they were
+obliged not to stick so much upon the honesty of it, but to
+trespass upon their friendly savages, and to borrow two large
+canoes, or periaguas, on pretence of going out a-fishing, or for
+pleasure. In these they came away the next morning. It seems they
+wanted no time to get themselves ready; for they had neither
+clothes nor provisions, nor anything in the world but what they had
+on them, and a few roots to eat, of which they used to make their
+bread. They were in all three weeks absent; and in that time,
+unluckily for them, I had the occasion offered for my escape, as I
+mentioned in the other part, and to get off from the island,
+leaving three of the most impudent, hardened, ungoverned,
+disagreeable villains behind me that any man could desire to meet
+with--to the poor Spaniards' great grief and disappointment.
+
+The only just thing the rogues did was, that when the Spaniards
+came ashore, they gave my letter to them, and gave them provisions,
+and other relief, as I had ordered them to do; also they gave them
+the long paper of directions which I had left with them, containing
+the particular methods which I took for managing every part of my
+life there; the way I baked my bread, bred up tame goats, and
+planted my corn; how I cured my grapes, made my pots, and, in a
+word, everything I did. All this being written down, they gave to
+the Spaniards (two of them understood English well enough): nor
+did they refuse to accommodate the Spaniards with anything else,
+for they agreed very well for some time. They gave them an equal
+admission into the house or cave, and they began to live very
+sociably; and the head Spaniard, who had seen pretty much of my
+methods, together with Friday's father, managed all their affairs;
+but as for the Englishmen, they did nothing but ramble about the
+island, shoot parrots, and catch tortoises; and when they came home
+at night, the Spaniards provided their suppers for them.
+
+The Spaniards would have been satisfied with this had the others
+but let them alone, which, however, they could not find in their
+hearts to do long: but, like the dog in the manger, they would not
+eat themselves, neither would they let the others eat. The
+differences, nevertheless, were at first but trivial, and such as
+are not worth relating, but at last it broke out into open war:
+and it began with all the rudeness and insolence that can be
+imagined--without reason, without provocation, contrary to nature,
+and indeed to common sense; and though, it is true, the first
+relation of it came from the Spaniards themselves, whom I may call
+the accusers, yet when I came to examine the fellows they could not
+deny a word of it.
+
+But before I come to the particulars of this part, I must supply a
+defect in my former relation; and this was, I forgot to set down
+among the rest, that just as we were weighing the anchor to set
+sail, there happened a little quarrel on board of our ship, which I
+was once afraid would have turned to a second mutiny; nor was it
+appeased till the captain, rousing up his courage, and taking us
+all to his assistance, parted them by force, and making two of the
+most refractory fellows prisoners, he laid them in irons: and as
+they had been active in the former disorders, and let fall some
+ugly, dangerous words the second time, he threatened to carry them
+in irons to England, and have them hanged there for mutiny and
+running away with the ship. This, it seems, though the captain did
+not intend to do it, frightened some other men in the ship; and
+some of them had put it into the head of the rest that the captain
+only gave them good words for the present, till they should come to
+same English port, and that then they should be all put into gaol,
+and tried for their lives. The mate got intelligence of this, and
+acquainted us with it, upon which it was desired that I, who still
+passed for a great man among them, should go down with the mate and
+satisfy the men, and tell them that they might be assured, if they
+behaved well the rest of the voyage, all they had done for the time
+past should be pardoned. So I went, and after passing my honour's
+word to them they appeared easy, and the more so when I caused the
+two men that were in irons to be released and forgiven.
+
+But this mutiny had brought us to an anchor for that night; the
+wind also falling calm next morning, we found that our two men who
+had been laid in irons had stolen each of them a musket and some
+other weapons (what powder or shot they had we knew not), and had
+taken the ship's pinnace, which was not yet hauled up, and run away
+with her to their companions in roguery on shore. As soon as we
+found this, I ordered the long-boat on shore, with twelve men and
+the mate, and away they went to seek the rogues; but they could
+neither find them nor any of the rest, for they all fled into the
+woods when they saw the boat coming on shore. The mate was once
+resolved, in justice to their roguery, to have destroyed their
+plantations, burned all their household stuff and furniture, and
+left them to shift without it; but having no orders, he let it all
+alone, left everything as he found it, and bringing the pinnace
+way, came on board without them. These two men made their number
+five; but the other three villains were so much more wicked than
+they, that after they had been two or three days together they
+turned the two newcomers out of doors to shift for themselves, and
+would have nothing to do with them; nor could they for a good while
+be persuaded to give them any food: as for the Spaniards, they
+were not yet come.
+
+When the Spaniards came first on shore, the business began to go
+forward: the Spaniards would have persuaded the three English
+brutes to have taken in their countrymen again, that, as they said,
+they might be all one family; but they would not hear of it, so the
+two poor fellows lived by themselves; and finding nothing but
+industry and application would make them live comfortably, they
+pitched their tents on the north shore of the island, but a little
+more to the west, to be out of danger of the savages, who always
+landed on the east parts of the island. Here they built them two
+huts, one to lodge in, and the other to lay up their magazines and
+stores in; and the Spaniards having given them some corn for seed,
+and some of the peas which I had left them, they dug, planted, and
+enclosed, after the pattern I had set for them all, and began to
+live pretty well. Their first crop of corn was on the ground; and
+though it was but a little bit of land which they had dug up at
+first, having had but a little time, yet it was enough to relieve
+them, and find them with bread and other eatables; and one of the
+fellows being the cook's mate of the ship, was very ready at making
+soup, puddings, and such other preparations as the rice and the
+milk, and such little flesh as they got, furnished him to do.
+
+They were going on in this little thriving position when the three
+unnatural rogues, their own countrymen too, in mere humour, and to
+insult them, came and bullied them, and told them the island was
+theirs: that the governor, meaning me, had given them the
+possession of it, and nobody else had any right to it; and that
+they should build no houses upon their ground unless they would pay
+rent for them. The two men, thinking they were jesting at first,
+asked them to come in and sit down, and see what fine houses they
+were that they had built, and to tell them what rent they demanded;
+and one of them merrily said if they were the ground-landlords, he
+hoped if they built tenements upon their land, and made
+improvements, they would, according to the custom of landlords,
+grant a long lease: and desired they would get a scrivener to draw
+the writings. One of the three, cursing and raging, told them they
+should see they were not in jest; and going to a little place at a
+distance, where the honest men had made a fire to dress their
+victuals, he takes a firebrand, and claps it to the outside of
+their hut, and set it on fire: indeed, it would have been all
+burned down in a few minutes if one of the two had not run to the
+fellow, thrust him away, and trod the fire out with his feet, and
+that not without some difficulty too.
+
+The fellow was in such a rage at the honest man's thrusting him
+away, that he returned upon him, with a pole he had in his hand,
+and had not the man avoided the blow very nimbly, and run into the
+hut, he had ended his days at once. His comrade, seeing the danger
+they were both in, ran after him, and immediately they came both
+out with their muskets, and the man that was first struck at with
+the pole knocked the fellow down that began the quarrel with the
+stock of his musket, and that before the other two could come to
+help him; and then, seeing the rest come at them, they stood
+together, and presenting the other ends of their pieces to them,
+bade them stand off.
+
+The others had firearms with them too; but one of the two honest
+men, bolder than his comrade, and made desperate by his danger,
+told them if they offered to move hand or foot they were dead men,
+and boldly commanded them to lay down their arms. They did not,
+indeed, lay down their arms, but seeing him so resolute, it brought
+them to a parley, and they consented to take their wounded man with
+them and be gone: and, indeed, it seems the fellow was wounded
+sufficiently with the blow. However, they were much in the wrong,
+since they had the advantage, that they did not disarm them
+effectually, as they might have done, and have gone immediately to
+the Spaniards, and given them an account how the rogues had treated
+them; for the three villains studied nothing but revenge, and every
+day gave them some intimation that they did so.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III--FIGHT WITH CANNIBALS
+
+
+
+But not to crowd this part with an account of the lesser part of
+the rogueries with which they plagued them continually, night and
+day, it forced the two men to such a desperation that they resolved
+to fight them all three, the first time they had a fair
+opportunity. In order to do this they resolved to go to the castle
+(as they called my old dwelling), where the three rogues and the
+Spaniards all lived together at that time, intending to have a fair
+battle, and the Spaniards should stand by to see fair play: so
+they got up in the morning before day, and came to the place, and
+called the Englishmen by their names telling a Spaniard that
+answered that they wanted to speak with them.
+
+It happened that the day before two of the Spaniards, having been
+in the woods, had seen one of the two Englishmen, whom, for
+distinction, I called the honest men, and he had made a sad
+complaint to the Spaniards of the barbarous usage they had met with
+from their three countrymen, and how they had ruined their
+plantation, and destroyed their corn, that they had laboured so
+hard to bring forward, and killed the milch-goat and their three
+kids, which was all they had provided for their sustenance, and
+that if he and his friends, meaning the Spaniards, did not assist
+them again, they should be starved. When the Spaniards came home
+at night, and they were all at supper, one of them took the freedom
+to reprove the three Englishmen, though in very gentle and mannerly
+terms, and asked them how they could be so cruel, they being
+harmless, inoffensive fellows: that they were putting themselves
+in a way to subsist by their labour, and that it had cost them a
+great deal of pains to bring things to such perfection as they were
+then in.
+
+One of the Englishmen returned very briskly, "What had they to do
+there? that they came on shore without leave; and that they should
+not plant or build upon the island; it was none of their ground."
+"Why," says the Spaniard, very calmly, "Seignior Inglese, they must
+not starve." The Englishman replied, like a rough tarpaulin, "They
+might starve; they should not plant nor build in that place." "But
+what must they do then, seignior?" said the Spaniard. Another of
+the brutes returned, "Do? they should be servants, and work for
+them." "But how can you expect that of them?" says the Spaniard;
+"they are not bought with your money; you have no right to make
+them servants." The Englishman answered, "The island was theirs;
+the governor had given it to them, and no man had anything to do
+there but themselves;" and with that he swore that he would go and
+burn all their new huts; they should build none upon their land.
+"Why, seignior," says the Spaniard, "by the same rule, we must be
+your servants, too." "Ay," returned the bold dog, "and so you
+shall, too, before we have done with you;" mixing two or three
+oaths in the proper intervals of his speech. The Spaniard only
+smiled at that, and made him no answer. However, this little
+discourse had heated them; and starting up, one says to the other.
+(I think it was he they called Will Atkins), "Come, Jack, let's go
+and have t'other brush with them; we'll demolish their castle, I'll
+warrant you; they shall plant no colony in our dominions."
+
+Upon this they were all trooping away, with every man a gun, a
+pistol, and a sword, and muttered some insolent things among
+themselves of what they would do to the Spaniards, too, when
+opportunity offered; but the Spaniards, it seems, did not so
+perfectly understand them as to know all the particulars, only that
+in general they threatened them hard for taking the two
+Englishmen's part. Whither they went, or how they bestowed their
+time that evening, the Spaniards said they did not know; but it
+seems they wandered about the country part of the night, and them
+lying down in the place which I used to call my bower, they were
+weary and overslept themselves. The case was this: they had
+resolved to stay till midnight, and so take the two poor men when
+they were asleep, and as they acknowledged afterwards, intended to
+set fire to their huts while they were in them, and either burn
+them there or murder them as they came out. As malice seldom
+sleeps very sound, it was very strange they should not have been
+kept awake. However, as the two men had also a design upon them,
+as I have said, though a much fairer one than that of burning and
+murdering, it happened, and very luckily for them all, that they
+were up and gone abroad before the bloody-minded rogues came to
+their huts.
+
+When they came there, and found the men gone, Atkins, who it seems
+was the forwardest man, called out to his comrade, "Ha, Jack,
+here's the nest, but the birds are flown." They mused a while, to
+think what should be the occasion of their being gone abroad so
+soon, and suggested presently that the Spaniards had given them
+notice of it; and with that they shook hands, and swore to one
+another that they would be revenged of the Spaniards. As soon as
+they had made this bloody bargain they fell to work with the poor
+men's habitation; they did not set fire, indeed, to anything, but
+they pulled down both their houses, and left not the least stick
+standing, or scarce any sign on the ground where they stood; they
+tore all their household stuff in pieces, and threw everything
+about in such a manner, that the poor men afterwards found some of
+their things a mile off. When they had done this, they pulled up
+all the young trees which the poor men had planted; broke down an
+enclosure they had made to secure their cattle and their corn; and,
+in a word, sacked and plundered everything as completely as a horde
+of Tartars would have done.
+
+The two men were at this juncture gone to find them out, and had
+resolved to fight them wherever they had been, though they were but
+two to three; so that, had they met, there certainly would have
+been blood shed among them, for they were all very stout, resolute
+fellows, to give them their due.
+
+But Providence took more care to keep them asunder than they
+themselves could do to meet; for, as if they had dogged one
+another, when the three were gone thither, the two were here; and
+afterwards, when the two went back to find them, the three were
+come to the old habitation again: we shall see their different
+conduct presently. When the three came back like furious
+creatures, flushed with the rage which the work they had been about
+had put them into, they came up to the Spaniards, and told them
+what they had done, by way of scoff and bravado; and one of them
+stepping up to one of the Spaniards, as if they had been a couple
+of boys at play, takes hold of his hat as it was upon his head, and
+giving it a twirl about, fleering in his face, says to him, "And
+you, Seignior Jack Spaniard, shall have the same sauce if you do
+not mend your manners." The Spaniard, who, though a quiet civil
+man, was as brave a man as could be, and withal a strong, well-made
+man, looked at him for a good while, and then, having no weapon in
+his hand, stepped gravely up to him, and, with one blow of his
+fist, knocked him down, as an ox is felled with a pole-axe; at
+which one of the rogues, as insolent as the first, fired his pistol
+at the Spaniard immediately; he missed his body, indeed, for the
+bullets went through his hair, but one of them touched the tip of
+his ear, and he bled pretty much. The blood made the Spaniard
+believe he was more hurt than he really was, and that put him into
+some heat, for before he acted all in a perfect calm; but now
+resolving to go through with his work, he stooped, and taking the
+fellow's musket whom he had knocked down, was just going to shoot
+the man who had fired at him, when the rest of the Spaniards, being
+in the cave, came out, and calling to him not to shoot, they
+stepped in, secured the other two, and took their arms from them.
+
+When they were thus disarmed, and found they had made all the
+Spaniards their enemies, as well as their own countrymen, they
+began to cool, and giving the Spaniards better words, would have
+their arms again; but the Spaniards, considering the feud that was
+between them and the other two Englishmen, and that it would be the
+best method they could take to keep them from killing one another,
+told them they would do them no harm, and if they would live
+peaceably, they would be very willing to assist and associate with
+them as they did before; but that they could not think of giving
+them their arms again, while they appeared so resolved to do
+mischief with them to their own countrymen, and had even threatened
+them all to make them their servants.
+
+The rogues were now quite deaf to all reason, and being refused
+their arms, they raved away like madmen, threatening what they
+would do, though they had no firearms. But the Spaniards,
+despising their threatening, told them they should take care how
+they offered any injury to their plantation or cattle; for if they
+did they would shoot them as they would ravenous beasts, wherever
+they found them; and if they fell into their hands alive, they
+should certainly be hanged. However, this was far from cooling
+them, but away they went, raging and swearing like furies. As soon
+as they were gone, the two men came back, in passion and rage
+enough also, though of another kind; for having been at their
+plantation, and finding it all demolished and destroyed, as above
+mentioned, it will easily be supposed they had provocation enough.
+They could scarce have room to tell their tale, the Spaniards were
+so eager to tell them theirs: and it was strange enough to find
+that three men should thus bully nineteen, and receive no
+punishment at all.
+
+The Spaniards, indeed, despised them, and especially, having thus
+disarmed them, made light of their threatenings; but the two
+Englishmen resolved to have their remedy against them, what pains
+soever it cost to find them out. But the Spaniards interposed here
+too, and told them that as they had disarmed them, they could not
+consent that they (the two) should pursue them with firearms, and
+perhaps kill them. "But," said the grave Spaniard, who was their
+governor, "we will endeavour to make them do you justice, if you
+will leave it to us: for there is no doubt but they will come to
+us again, when their passion is over, being not able to subsist
+without our assistance. We promise you to make no peace with them
+without having full satisfaction for you; and upon this condition
+we hope you will promise to use no violence with them, other than
+in your own defence." The two Englishmen yielded to this very
+awkwardly, and with great reluctance; but the Spaniards protested
+that they did it only to keep them from bloodshed, and to make them
+all easy at last. "For," said they, "we are not so many of us;
+here is room enough for us all, and it is a great pity that we
+should not be all good friends." At length they did consent, and
+waited for the issue of the thing, living for some days with the
+Spaniards; for their own habitation was destroyed.
+
+In about five days' time the vagrants, tired with wandering, and
+almost starved with hunger, having chiefly lived on turtles' eggs
+all that while, came back to the grove; and finding my Spaniard,
+who, as I have said, was the governor, and two more with him,
+walking by the side of the creek, they came up in a very
+submissive, humble manner, and begged to be received again into the
+society. The Spaniards used them civilly, but told them they had
+acted so unnaturally to their countrymen, and so very grossly to
+themselves, that they could not come to any conclusion without
+consulting the two Englishmen and the rest; but, however, they
+would go to them and discourse about it, and they should know in
+half-an-hour. It may be guessed that they were very hard put to
+it; for, as they were to wait this half-hour for an answer, they
+begged they would send them out some bread in the meantime, which
+they did, sending at the same time a large piece of goat's flesh
+and a boiled parrot, which they ate very eagerly.
+
+After half-an-hour's consultation they were called in, and a long
+debate ensued, their two countrymen charging them with the ruin of
+all their labour, and a design to murder them; all which they owned
+before, and therefore could not deny now. Upon the whole, the
+Spaniards acted the moderators between them; and as they had
+obliged the two Englishmen not to hurt the three while they were
+naked and unarmed, so they now obliged the three to go and rebuild
+their fellows' two huts, one to be of the same and the other of
+larger dimensions than they were before; to fence their ground
+again, plant trees in the room of those pulled up, dig up the land
+again for planting corn, and, in a word, to restore everything to
+the same state as they found it, that is, as near as they could.
+
+Well, they submitted to all this; and as they had plenty of
+provisions given them all the while, they grew very orderly, and
+the whole society began to live pleasantly and agreeably together
+again; only that these three fellows could never be persuaded to
+work--I mean for themselves--except now and then a little, just as
+they pleased. However, the Spaniards told them plainly that if
+they would but live sociably and friendly together, and study the
+good of the whole plantation, they would be content to work for
+them, and let them walk about and be as idle as they pleased; and
+thus, having lived pretty well together for a month or two, the
+Spaniards let them have arms again, and gave them liberty to go
+abroad with them as before.
+
+It was not above a week after they had these arms, and went abroad,
+before the ungrateful creatures began to be as insolent and
+troublesome as ever. However, an accident happened presently upon
+this, which endangered the safety of them all, and they were
+obliged to lay by all private resentments, and look to the
+preservation of their lives.
+
+It happened one night that the governor, the Spaniard whose life I
+had saved, who was now the governor of the rest, found himself very
+uneasy in the night, and could by no means get any sleep: he was
+perfectly well in body, only found his thoughts tumultuous; his
+mind ran upon men fighting and killing one another; but he was
+broad awake, and could not by any means get any sleep; in short, he
+lay a great while, but growing more and more uneasy, he resolved to
+rise. As they lay, being so many of them, on goat-skins laid thick
+upon such couches and pads as they made for themselves, so they had
+little to do, when they were willing to rise, but to get upon their
+feet, and perhaps put on a coat, such as it was, and their pumps,
+and they were ready for going any way that their thoughts guided
+them. Being thus got up, he looked out; but being dark, he could
+see little or nothing, and besides, the trees which I had planted,
+and which were now grown tall, intercepted his sight, so that he
+could only look up, and see that it was a starlight night, and
+hearing no noise, he returned and lay down again; but to no
+purpose; he could not compose himself to anything like rest; but
+his thoughts were to the last degree uneasy, and he knew not for
+what. Having made some noise with rising and walking about, going
+out and coming in, another of them waked, and asked who it was that
+was up. The governor told him how it had been with him. "Say you
+so?" says the other Spaniard; "such things are not to be slighted,
+I assure you; there is certainly some mischief working near us;"
+and presently he asked him, "Where are the Englishmen?" "They are
+all in their huts," says he, "safe enough." It seems the Spaniards
+had kept possession of the main apartment, and had made a place for
+the three Englishmen, who, since their last mutiny, were always
+quartered by themselves, and could not come at the rest. "Well,"
+says the Spaniard, "there is something in it, I am persuaded, from
+my own experience. I am satisfied that our spirits embodied have a
+converse with and receive intelligence from the spirits unembodied,
+and inhabiting the invisible world; and this friendly notice is
+given for our advantage, if we knew how to make use of it. Come,
+let us go and look abroad; and if we find nothing at all in it to
+justify the trouble, I'll tell you a story to the purpose, that
+shall convince you of the justice of my proposing it."
+
+They went out presently to go up to the top of the hill, where I
+used to go; but they being strong, and a good company, nor alone,
+as I was, used none of my cautions to go up by the ladder, and
+pulling it up after them, to go up a second stage to the top, but
+were going round through the grove unwarily, when they were
+surprised with seeing a light as of fire, a very little way from
+them, and hearing the voices of men, not of one or two, but of a
+great number.
+
+Among the precautions I used to take on the savages landing on the
+island, it was my constant care to prevent them making the least
+discovery of there being any inhabitant upon the place: and when
+by any occasion they came to know it, they felt it so effectually
+that they that got away were scarce able to give any account of it;
+for we disappeared as soon as possible, nor did ever any that had
+seen me escape to tell any one else, except it was the three
+savages in our last encounter who jumped into the boat; of whom, I
+mentioned, I was afraid they should go home and bring more help.
+Whether it was the consequence of the escape of those men that so
+great a number came now together, or whether they came ignorantly,
+and by accident, on their usual bloody errand, the Spaniards could
+not understand; but whatever it was, it was their business either
+to have concealed themselves or not to have seen them at all, much
+less to have let the savages have seen there were any inhabitants
+in the place; or to have fallen upon them so effectually as not a
+man of them should have escaped, which could only have been by
+getting in between them and their boats; but this presence of mind
+was wanting to them, which was the ruin of their tranquillity for a
+great while.
+
+We need not doubt but that the governor and the man with him,
+surprised with this sight, ran back immediately and raised their
+fellows, giving them an account of the imminent danger they were
+all in, and they again as readily took the alarm; but it was
+impossible to persuade them to stay close within where they were,
+but they must all run out to see how things stood. While it was
+dark, indeed, they were safe, and they had opportunity enough for
+some hours to view the savages by the light of three fires they had
+made at a distance from one another; what they were doing they knew
+not, neither did they know what to do themselves. For, first, the
+enemy were too many; and secondly, they did not keep together, but
+were divided into several parties, and were on shore in several
+places.
+
+The Spaniards were in no small consternation at this sight; and, as
+they found that the fellows went straggling all over the shore,
+they made no doubt but, first or last, some of them would chop in
+upon their habitation, or upon some other place where they would
+see the token of inhabitants; and they were in great perplexity
+also for fear of their flock of goats, which, if they should be
+destroyed, would have been little less than starving them. So the
+first thing they resolved upon was to despatch three men away
+before it was light, two Spaniards and one Englishman, to drive
+away all the goats to the great valley where the cave was, and, if
+need were, to drive them into the very cave itself. Could they
+have seen the savages all together in one body, and at a distance
+from their canoes, they were resolved, if there had been a hundred
+of them, to attack them; but that could not be done, for they were
+some of them two miles off from the other, and, as it appeared
+afterwards, were of two different nations.
+
+After having mused a great while on the course they should take,
+they resolved at last, while it was still dark, to send the old
+savage, Friday's father, out as a spy, to learn, if possible,
+something concerning them, as what they came for, what they
+intended to do, and the like. The old man readily undertook it;
+and stripping himself quite naked, as most of the savages were,
+away he went. After he had been gone an hour or two, he brings
+word that he had been among them undiscovered, that he found they
+were two parties, and of two several nations, who had war with one
+another, and had a great battle in their own country; and that both
+sides having had several prisoners taken in the fight, they were,
+by mere chance, landed all on the same island, for the devouring
+their prisoners and making merry; but their coming so by chance to
+the same place had spoiled all their mirth--that they were in a
+great rage at one another, and were so near that he believed they
+would fight again as soon as daylight began to appear; but he did
+not perceive that they had any notion of anybody being on the
+island but themselves. He had hardly made an end of telling his
+story, when they could perceive, by the unusual noise they made,
+that the two little armies were engaged in a bloody fight.
+Friday's father used all the arguments he could to persuade our
+people to lie close, and not be seen; he told them their safety
+consisted in it, and that they had nothing to do but lie still, and
+the savages would kill one another to their hands, and then the
+rest would go away; and it was so to a tittle. But it was
+impossible to prevail, especially upon the Englishmen; their
+curiosity was so importunate that they must run out and see the
+battle. However, they used some caution too: they did not go
+openly, just by their own dwelling, but went farther into the
+woods, and placed themselves to advantage, where they might
+securely see them manage the fight, and, as they thought, not be
+seen by them; but the savages did see them, as we shall find
+hereafter.
+
+The battle was very fierce, and, if I might believe the Englishmen,
+one of them said he could perceive that some of them were men of
+great bravery, of invincible spirit, and of great policy in guiding
+the fight. The battle, they said, held two hours before they could
+guess which party would be beaten; but then that party which was
+nearest our people's habitation began to appear weakest, and after
+some time more some of them began to fly; and this put our men
+again into a great consternation, lest any one of those that fled
+should run into the grove before their dwelling for shelter, and
+thereby involuntarily discover the place; and that, by consequence,
+the pursuers would also do the like in search of them. Upon this,
+they resolved that they would stand armed within the wall, and
+whoever came into the grove, they resolved to sally out over the
+wall and kill them, so that, if possible, not one should return to
+give an account of it; they ordered also that it should be done
+with their swords, or by knocking them down with the stocks of
+their muskets, but not by shooting them, for fear of raising an
+alarm by the noise.
+
+As they expected it fell out; three of the routed army fled for
+life, and crossing the creek, ran directly into the place, not in
+the least knowing whither they went, but running as into a thick
+wood for shelter. The scout they kept to look abroad gave notice
+of this within, with this comforting addition, that the conquerors
+had not pursued them, or seen which way they were gone; upon this
+the Spanish governor, a man of humanity, would not suffer them to
+kill the three fugitives, but sending three men out by the top of
+the hill, ordered them to go round, come in behind them, and
+surprise and take them prisoners, which was done. The residue of
+the conquered people fled to their canoes, and got off to sea; the
+victors retired, made no pursuit, or very little, but drawing
+themselves into a body together, gave two great screaming shouts,
+most likely by way of triumph, and so the fight ended; the same
+day, about three o'clock in the afternoon, they also marched to
+their canoes. And thus the Spaniards had the island again free to
+themselves, their fright was over, and they saw no savages for
+several years after.
+
+After they were all gone, the Spaniards came out of their den, and
+viewing the field of battle, they found about two-and-thirty men
+dead on the spot; some were killed with long arrows, which were
+found sticking in their bodies; but most of them were killed with
+great wooden swords, sixteen or seventeen of which they found in
+the field of battle, and as many bows, with a great many arrows.
+These swords were strange, unwieldy things, and they must be very
+strong men that used them; most of those that were killed with them
+had their heads smashed to pieces, as we may say, or, as we call it
+in English, their brains knocked out, and several their arms and
+legs broken; so that it is evident they fight with inexpressible
+rage and fury. We found not one man that was not stone dead; for
+either they stay by their enemy till they have killed him, or they
+carry all the wounded men that are not quite dead away with them.
+
+This deliverance tamed our ill-disposed Englishmen for a great
+while; the sight had filled them with horror, and the consequences
+appeared terrible to the last degree, especially upon supposing
+that some time or other they should fall into the hands of those
+creatures, who would not only kill them as enemies, but for food,
+as we kill our cattle; and they professed to me that the thoughts
+of being eaten up like beef and mutton, though it was supposed it
+was not to be till they were dead, had something in it so horrible
+that it nauseated their very stomachs, made them sick when they
+thought of it, and filled their minds with such unusual terror,
+that they were not themselves for some weeks after. This, as I
+said, tamed even the three English brutes I have been speaking of;
+and for a great while after they were tractable, and went about the
+common business of the whole society well enough--planted, sowed,
+reaped, and began to be all naturalised to the country. But some
+time after this they fell into such simple measures again as
+brought them into a great deal of trouble.
+
+They had taken three prisoners, as I observed; and these three
+being stout young fellows, they made them servants, and taught them
+to work for them, and as slaves they did well enough; but they did
+not take their measures as I did by my man Friday, viz. to begin
+with them upon the principle of having saved their lives, and then
+instruct them in the rational principles of life; much less did
+they think of teaching them religion, or attempt civilising and
+reducing them by kind usage and affectionate arguments. As they
+gave them their food every day, so they gave them their work too,
+and kept them fully employed in drudgery enough; but they failed in
+this by it, that they never had them to assist them and fight for
+them as I had my man Friday, who was as true to me as the very
+flesh upon my bones.
+
+But to come to the family part. Being all now good friends--for
+common danger, as I said above, had effectually reconciled them--
+they began to consider their general circumstances; and the first
+thing that came under consideration was whether, seeing the savages
+particularly haunted that side of the island, and that there were
+more remote and retired parts of it equally adapted to their way of
+living, and manifestly to their advantage, they should not rather
+move their habitation, and plant in some more proper place for
+their safety, and especially for the security of their cattle and
+corn.
+
+Upon this, after long debate, it was concluded that they would not
+remove their habitation; because that, some time or other, they
+thought they might hear from their governor again, meaning me; and
+if I should send any one to seek them, I should be sure to direct
+them to that side, where, if they should find the place demolished,
+they would conclude the savages had killed us all, and we were
+gone, and so our supply would go too. But as to their corn and
+cattle, they agreed to remove them into the valley where my cave
+was, where the land was as proper for both, and where indeed there
+was land enough. However, upon second thoughts they altered one
+part of their resolution too, and resolved only to remove part of
+their cattle thither, and part of their corn there; so that if one
+part was destroyed the other might be saved. And one part of
+prudence they luckily used: they never trusted those three savages
+which they had taken prisoners with knowing anything of the
+plantation they had made in that valley, or of any cattle they had
+there, much less of the cave at that place, which they kept, in
+case of necessity, as a safe retreat; and thither they carried also
+the two barrels of powder which I had sent them at my coming away.
+They resolved, however, not to change their habitation; yet, as I
+had carefully covered it first with a wall or fortification, and
+then with a grove of trees, and as they were now fully convinced
+their safety consisted entirely in their being concealed, they set
+to work to cover and conceal the place yet more effectually than
+before. For this purpose, as I planted trees, or rather thrust in
+stakes, which in time all grew up to be trees, for some good
+distance before the entrance into my apartments, they went on in
+the same manner, and filled up the rest of that whole space of
+ground from the trees I had set quite down to the side of the
+creek, where I landed my floats, and even into the very ooze where
+the tide flowed, not so much as leaving any place to land, or any
+sign that there had been any landing thereabouts: these stakes
+also being of a wood very forward to grow, they took care to have
+them generally much larger and taller than those which I had
+planted. As they grew apace, they planted them so very thick and
+close together, that when they had been three or four years grown
+there was no piercing with the eye any considerable way into the
+plantation. As for that part which I had planted, the trees were
+grown as thick as a man's thigh, and among them they had placed so
+many other short ones, and so thick, that it stood like a palisado
+a quarter of a mile thick, and it was next to impossible to
+penetrate it, for a little dog could hardly get between the trees,
+they stood so close.
+
+But this was not all; for they did the same by all the ground to
+the right hand and to the left, and round even to the side of the
+hill, leaving no way, not so much as for themselves, to come out
+but by the ladder placed up to the side of the hill, and then
+lifted up, and placed again from the first stage up to the top: so
+that when the ladder was taken down, nothing but what had wings or
+witchcraft to assist it could come at them. This was excellently
+well contrived: nor was it less than what they afterwards found
+occasion for, which served to convince me, that as human prudence
+has the authority of Providence to justify it, so it has doubtless
+the direction of Providence to set it to work; and if we listened
+carefully to the voice of it, I am persuaded we might prevent many
+of the disasters which our lives are now, by our own negligence,
+subjected to.
+
+They lived two years after this in perfect retirement, and had no
+more visits from the savages. They had, indeed, an alarm given
+them one morning, which put them into a great consternation; for
+some of the Spaniards being out early one morning on the west side
+or end of the island (which was that end where I never went, for
+fear of being discovered), they were surprised with seeing about
+twenty canoes of Indians just coming on shore. They made the best
+of their way home in hurry enough; and giving the alarm to their
+comrades, they kept close all that day and the next, going out only
+at night to make their observation: but they had the good luck to
+be undiscovered, for wherever the savages went, they did not land
+that time on the island, but pursued some other design.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV--RENEWED INVASION OF SAVAGES
+
+
+
+And now they had another broil with the three Englishmen; one of
+whom, a most turbulent fellow, being in a rage at one of the three
+captive slaves, because the fellow had not done something right
+which he bade him do, and seemed a little untractable in his
+showing him, drew a hatchet out of a frog-belt which he wore by his
+side, and fell upon the poor savage, not to correct him, but to
+kill him. One of the Spaniards who was by, seeing him give the
+fellow a barbarous cut with the hatchet, which he aimed at his
+head, but stuck into his shoulder, so that he thought he had cut
+the poor creature's arm off, ran to him, and entreating him not to
+murder the poor man, placed himself between him and the savage, to
+prevent the mischief. The fellow, being enraged the more at this,
+struck at the Spaniard with his hatchet, and swore he would serve
+him as he intended to serve the savage; which the Spaniard
+perceiving, avoided the blow, and with a shovel, which he had in
+his hand (for they were all working in the field about their corn
+land), knocked the brute down. Another of the Englishmen, running
+up at the same time to help his comrade, knocked the Spaniard down;
+and then two Spaniards more came in to help their man, and a third
+Englishman fell in upon them. They had none of them any firearms
+or any other weapons but hatchets and other tools, except this
+third Englishman; he had one of my rusty cutlasses, with which he
+made at the two last Spaniards, and wounded them both. This fray
+set the whole family in an uproar, and more help coming in they
+took the three Englishmen prisoners. The next question was, what
+should be done with them? They had been so often mutinous, and
+were so very furious, so desperate, and so idle withal, they knew
+not what course to take with them, for they were mischievous to the
+highest degree, and cared not what hurt they did to any man; so
+that, in short, it was not safe to live with them.
+
+The Spaniard who was governor told them, in so many words, that if
+they had been of his own country he would have hanged them; for all
+laws and all governors were to preserve society, and those who were
+dangerous to the society ought to be expelled out of it; but as
+they were Englishmen, and that it was to the generous kindness of
+an Englishman that they all owed their preservation and
+deliverance, he would use them with all possible lenity, and would
+leave them to the judgment of the other two Englishmen, who were
+their countrymen. One of the two honest Englishmen stood up, and
+said they desired it might not be left to them. "For," says he, "I
+am sure we ought to sentence them to the gallows;" and with that he
+gives an account how Will Atkins, one of the three, had proposed to
+have all the five Englishmen join together and murder all the
+Spaniards when they were in their sleep.
+
+When the Spanish governor heard this, he calls to Will Atkins,
+"How, Seignior Atkins, would you murder us all? What have you to
+say to that?" The hardened villain was so far from denying it,
+that he said it was true, and swore they would do it still before
+they had done with them. "Well, but Seignior Atkins," says the
+Spaniard, "what have we done to you that you will kill us? What
+would you get by killing us? And what must we do to prevent you
+killing us? Must we kill you, or you kill us? Why will you put us
+to the necessity of this, Seignior Atkins?" says the Spaniard very
+calmly, and smiling. Seignior Atkins was in such a rage at the
+Spaniard's making a jest of it, that, had he not been held by three
+men, and withal had no weapon near him, it was thought he would
+have attempted to kill the Spaniard in the middle of all the
+company. This hare-brained carriage obliged them to consider
+seriously what was to be done. The two Englishmen and the Spaniard
+who saved the poor savage were of the opinion that they should hang
+one of the three for an example to the rest, and that particularly
+it should be he that had twice attempted to commit murder with his
+hatchet; indeed, there was some reason to believe he had done it,
+for the poor savage was in such a miserable condition with the
+wound he had received that it was thought he could not live. But
+the governor Spaniard still said No; it was an Englishman that had
+saved all their lives, and he would never consent to put an
+Englishman to death, though he had murdered half of them; nay, he
+said if he had been killed himself by an Englishman, and had time
+left to speak, it should be that they should pardon him.
+
+This was so positively insisted on by the governor Spaniard, that
+there was no gainsaying it; and as merciful counsels are most apt
+to prevail where they are so earnestly pressed, so they all came
+into it. But then it was to be considered what should be done to
+keep them from doing the mischief they designed; for all agreed,
+governor and all, that means were to be used for preserving the
+society from danger. After a long debate, it was agreed that they
+should be disarmed, and not permitted to have either gun, powder,
+shot, sword, or any weapon; that they should be turned out of the
+society, and left to live where they would and how they would, by
+themselves; but that none of the rest, either Spaniards or English,
+should hold any kind of converse with them, or have anything to do
+with them; that they should be forbid to come within a certain
+distance of the place where the rest dwelt; and if they offered to
+commit any disorder, so as to spoil, burn, kill, or destroy any of
+the corn, plantings, buildings, fences, or cattle belonging to the
+society, they should die without mercy, and they would shoot them
+wherever they could find them.
+
+The humane governor, musing upon the sentence, considered a little
+upon it; and turning to the two honest Englishmen, said, "Hold; you
+must reflect that it will be long ere they can raise corn and
+cattle of their own, and they must not starve; we must therefore
+allow them provisions." So he caused to be added, that they should
+have a proportion of corn given them to last them eight months, and
+for seed to sow, by which time they might be supposed to raise some
+of their own; that they should have six milch-goats, four he-goats,
+and six kids given them, as well for present subsistence as for a
+store; and that they should have tools given them for their work in
+the fields, but they should have none of these tools or provisions
+unless they would swear solemnly that they would not hurt or injure
+any of the Spaniards with them, or of their fellow-Englishmen.
+
+Thus they dismissed them the society, and turned them out to shift
+for themselves. They went away sullen and refractory, as neither
+content to go away nor to stay: but, as there was no remedy, they
+went, pretending to go and choose a place where they would settle
+themselves; and some provisions were given them, but no weapons.
+About four or five days after, they came again for some victuals,
+and gave the governor an account where they had pitched their
+tents, and marked themselves out a habitation and plantation; and
+it was a very convenient place indeed, on the remotest part of the
+island, NE., much about the place where I providentially landed in
+my first voyage, when I was driven out to sea in my foolish attempt
+to sail round the island.
+
+Here they built themselves two handsome huts, and contrived them in
+a manner like my first habitation, being close under the side of a
+hill, having some trees already growing on three sides of it, so
+that by planting others it would be very easily covered from the
+sight, unless narrowly searched for. They desired some dried goat-
+skins for beds and covering, which were given them; and upon giving
+their words that they would not disturb the rest, or injure any of
+their plantations, they gave them hatchets, and what other tools
+they could spare; some peas, barley, and rice, for sowing; and, in
+a word, anything they wanted, except arms and ammunition.
+
+They lived in this separate condition about six months, and had got
+in their first harvest, though the quantity was but small, the
+parcel of land they had planted being but little. Indeed, having
+all their plantation to form, they had a great deal of work upon
+their hands; and when they came to make boards and pots, and such
+things, they were quite out of their element, and could make
+nothing of it; therefore when the rainy season came on, for want of
+a cave in the earth, they could not keep their grain dry, and it
+was in great danger of spoiling. This humbled them much: so they
+came and begged the Spaniards to help them, which they very readily
+did; and in four days worked a great hole in the side of the hill
+for them, big enough to secure their corn and other things from the
+rain: but it was a poor place at best compared to mine, and
+especially as mine was then, for the Spaniards had greatly enlarged
+it, and made several new apartments in it.
+
+About three quarters of a year after this separation, a new frolic
+took these rogues, which, together with the former villainy they
+had committed, brought mischief enough upon them, and had very near
+been the ruin of the whole colony. The three new associates began,
+it seems, to be weary of the laborious life they led, and that
+without hope of bettering their circumstances: and a whim took
+them that they would make a voyage to the continent, from whence
+the savages came, and would try if they could seize upon some
+prisoners among the natives there, and bring them home, so as to
+make them do the laborious part of the work for them.
+
+The project was not so preposterous, if they had gone no further.
+But they did nothing, and proposed nothing, but had either mischief
+in the design, or mischief in the event. And if I may give my
+opinion, they seemed to be under a blast from Heaven: for if we
+will not allow a visible curse to pursue visible crimes, how shall
+we reconcile the events of things with the divine justice? It was
+certainly an apparent vengeance on their crime of mutiny and piracy
+that brought them to the state they were in; and they showed not
+the least remorse for the crime, but added new villanies to it,
+such as the piece of monstrous cruelty of wounding a poor slave
+because he did not, or perhaps could not, understand to do what he
+was directed, and to wound him in such a manner as made him a
+cripple all his life, and in a place where no surgeon or medicine
+could be had for his cure; and, what was still worse, the
+intentional murder, for such to be sure it was, as was afterwards
+the formed design they all laid to murder the Spaniards in cold
+blood, and in their sleep.
+
+The three fellows came down to the Spaniards one morning, and in
+very humble terms desired to be admitted to speak with them. The
+Spaniards very readily heard what they had to say, which was this:
+that they were tired of living in the manner they did, and that
+they were not handy enough to make the necessaries they wanted, and
+that having no help, they found they should be starved; but if the
+Spaniards would give them leave to take one of the canoes which
+they came over in, and give them arms and ammunition proportioned
+to their defence, they would go over to the main, and seek their
+fortunes, and so deliver them from the trouble of supplying them
+with any other provisions.
+
+The Spaniards were glad enough to get rid of them, but very
+honestly represented to them the certain destruction they were
+running into; told them they had suffered such hardships upon that
+very spot, that they could, without any spirit of prophecy, tell
+them they would be starved or murdered, and bade them consider of
+it. The men replied audaciously, they should be starved if they
+stayed here, for they could not work, and would not work, and they
+could but be starved abroad; and if they were murdered, there was
+an end of them; they had no wives or children to cry after them;
+and, in short, insisted importunately upon their demand, declaring
+they would go, whether they gave them any arms or not.
+
+The Spaniards told them, with great kindness, that if they were
+resolved to go they should not go like naked men, and be in no
+condition to defend themselves; and that though they could ill
+spare firearms, not having enough for themselves, yet they would
+let them have two muskets, a pistol, and a cutlass, and each man a
+hatchet, which they thought was sufficient for them. In a word,
+they accepted the offer; and having baked bread enough to serve
+them a month given them, and as much goats' flesh as they could eat
+while it was sweet, with a great basket of dried grapes, a pot of
+fresh water, and a young kid alive, they boldly set out in the
+canoe for a voyage over the sea, where it was at least forty miles
+broad. The boat, indeed, was a large one, and would very well have
+carried fifteen or twenty men, and therefore was rather too big for
+them to manage; but as they had a fair breeze and flood-tide with
+them, they did well enough. They had made a mast of a long pole,
+and a sail of four large goat-skins dried, which they had sewed or
+laced together; and away they went merrily together. The Spaniards
+called after them "Bon voyajo;" and no man ever thought of seeing
+them any more.
+
+The Spaniards were often saying to one another, and to the two
+honest Englishmen who remained behind, how quietly and comfortably
+they lived, now these three turbulent fellows were gone. As for
+their coming again, that was the remotest thing from their thoughts
+that could be imagined; when, behold, after two-and-twenty days'
+absence, one of the Englishmen being abroad upon his planting work,
+sees three strange men coming towards him at a distance, with guns
+upon their shoulders.
+
+Away runs the Englishman, frightened and amazed, as if he was
+bewitched, to the governor Spaniard, and tells him they were all
+undone, for there were strangers upon the island, but he could not
+tell who they were. The Spaniard, pausing a while, says to him,
+"How do you mean--you cannot tell who? They are the savages, to be
+sure." "No, no," says the Englishman, "they are men in clothes,
+with arms." "Nay, then," says the Spaniard, "why are you so
+concerned! If they are not savages they must be friends; for there
+is no Christian nation upon earth but will do us good rather than
+harm." While they were debating thus, came up the three
+Englishmen, and standing without the wood, which was new planted,
+hallooed to them. They presently knew their voices, and so all the
+wonder ceased. But now the admiration was turned upon another
+question--What could be the matter, and what made them come back
+again?
+
+It was not long before they brought the men in, and inquiring where
+they had been, and what they had been doing, they gave them a full
+account of their voyage in a few words: that they reached the land
+in less than two days, but finding the people alarmed at their
+coming, and preparing with bows and arrows to fight them, they
+durst not go on, shore, but sailed on to the northward six or seven
+hours, till they came to a great opening, by which they perceived
+that the land they saw from our island was not the main, but an
+island: that upon entering that opening of the sea they saw
+another island on the right hand north, and several more west; and
+being resolved to land somewhere, they put over to one of the
+islands which lay west, and went boldly on shore; that they found
+the people very courteous and friendly to them; and they gave them
+several roots and some dried fish, and appeared very sociable; and
+that the women, as well as the men, were very forward to supply
+them with anything they could get for them to eat, and brought it
+to them a great way, on their heads. They continued here for four
+days, and inquired as well as they could of them by signs, what
+nations were this way, and that way, and were told of several
+fierce and terrible people that lived almost every way, who, as
+they made known by signs to them, used to eat men; but, as for
+themselves, they said they never ate men or women, except only such
+as they took in the wars; and then they owned they made a great
+feast, and ate their prisoners.
+
+The Englishmen inquired when they had had a feast of that kind; and
+they told them about two moons ago, pointing to the moon and to two
+fingers; and that their great king had two hundred prisoners now,
+which he had taken in his war, and they were feeding them to make
+them fat for the next feast. The Englishmen seemed mighty desirous
+of seeing those prisoners; but the others mistaking them, thought
+they were desirous to have some of them to carry away for their own
+eating. So they beckoned to them, pointing to the setting of the
+sun, and then to the rising; which was to signify that the next
+morning at sunrising they would bring some for them; and
+accordingly the next morning they brought down five women and
+eleven men, and gave them to the Englishmen to carry with them on
+their voyage, just as we would bring so many cows and oxen down to
+a seaport town to victual a ship.
+
+As brutish and barbarous as these fellows were at home, their
+stomachs turned at this sight, and they did not know what to do.
+To refuse the prisoners would have been the highest affront to the
+savage gentry that could be offered them, and what to do with them
+they knew not. However, after some debate, they resolved to accept
+of them: and, in return, they gave the savages that brought them
+one of their hatchets, an old key, a knife, and six or seven of
+their bullets; which, though they did not understand their use,
+they seemed particularly pleased with; and then tying the poor
+creatures' hands behind them, they dragged the prisoners into the
+boat for our men.
+
+The Englishmen were obliged to come away as soon as they had them,
+or else they that gave them this noble present would certainly have
+expected that they should have gone to work with them, have killed
+two or three of them the next morning, and perhaps have invited the
+donors to dinner. But having taken their leave, with all the
+respect and thanks that could well pass between people, where on
+either side they understood not one word they could say, they put
+off with their boat, and came back towards the first island; where,
+when they arrived, they set eight of their prisoners at liberty,
+there being too many of them for their occasion. In their voyage
+they endeavoured to have some communication with their prisoners;
+but it was impossible to make them understand anything. Nothing
+they could say to them, or give them, or do for them, but was
+looked upon as going to murder them. They first of all unbound
+them; but the poor creatures screamed at that, especially the
+women, as if they had just felt the knife at their throats; for
+they immediately concluded they were unbound on purpose to be
+killed. If they gave them thing to eat, it was the same thing;
+they then concluded it was for fear they should sink in flesh, and
+so not be fat enough to kill. If they looked at one of them more
+particularly, the party presently concluded it was to see whether
+he or she was fattest, and fittest to kill first; nay, after they
+had brought them quite over, and began to use them kindly, and
+treat them well, still they expected every day to make a dinner or
+supper for their new masters.
+
+When the three wanderers had give this unaccountable history or
+journal of their voyage, the Spaniard asked them where their new
+family was; and being told that they had brought them on shore, and
+put them into one of their huts, and were come up to beg some
+victuals for them, they (the Spaniards) and the other two
+Englishmen, that is to say, the whole colony, resolved to go all
+down to the place and see them; and did so, and Friday's father
+with them. When they came into the hut, there they sat, all bound;
+for when they had brought them on shore they bound their hands that
+they might not take the boat and make their escape; there, I say,
+they sat, all of them stark naked. First, there were three comely
+fellows, well shaped, with straight limbs, about thirty to thirty-
+five years of age; and five women, whereof two might be from thirty
+to forty, two more about four or five and twenty; and the fifth, a
+tall, comely maiden, about seventeen. The women were well-
+favoured, agreeable persons, both in shape and features, only
+tawny; and two of them, had they been perfect white, would have
+passed for very handsome women, even in London, having pleasant
+countenances, and of a very modest behaviour; especially when they
+came afterwards to be clothed and dressed, though that dress was
+very indifferent, it must be confessed.
+
+The sight, you may be sure, was something uncouth to our Spaniards,
+who were, to give them a just character, men of the most calm,
+sedate tempers, and perfect good humour, that ever I met with:
+and, in particular, of the utmost modesty: I say, the sight was
+very uncouth, to see three naked men and five naked women, all
+together bound, and in the most miserable circumstances that human
+nature could be supposed to be, viz. to be expecting every moment
+to be dragged out and have their brains knocked out, and then to be
+eaten up like a calf that is killed for a dainty.
+
+The first thing they did was to cause the old Indian, Friday's
+father, to go in, and see first if he knew any of them, and then if
+he understood any of their speech. As soon as the old man came in,
+he looked seriously at them, but knew none of them; neither could
+any of them understand a word he said, or a sign he could make,
+except one of the women. However, this was enough to answer the
+end, which was to satisfy them that the men into whose hands they
+were fallen were Christians; that they abhorred eating men or
+women; and that they might be sure they would not be killed. As
+soon as they were assured of this, they discovered such a joy, and
+by such awkward gestures, several ways, as is hard to describe; for
+it seems they were of several nations. The woman who was their
+interpreter was bid, in the next place, to ask them if they were
+willing to be servants, and to work for the men who had brought
+them away, to save their lives; at which they all fell a-dancing;
+and presently one fell to taking up this, and another that,
+anything that lay next, to carry on their shoulders, to intimate
+they were willing to work.
+
+The governor, who found that the having women among them would
+presently be attended with some inconvenience, and might occasion
+some strife, and perhaps blood, asked the three men what they
+intended to do with these women, and how they intended to use them,
+whether as servants or as wives? One of the Englishmen answered,
+very boldly and readily, that they would use them as both; to which
+the governor said: "I am not going to restrain you from it--you
+are your own masters as to that; but this I think is but just, for
+avoiding disorders and quarrels among you, and I desire it of you
+for that reason only, viz. that you will all engage, that if any of
+you take any of these women as a wife, he shall take but one; and
+that having taken one, none else shall touch her; for though we
+cannot marry any one of you, yet it is but reasonable that, while
+you stay here, the woman any of you takes shall be maintained by
+the man that takes her, and should be his wife--I mean," says he,
+"while he continues here, and that none else shall have anything to
+do with her." All this appeared so just, that every one agreed to
+it without any difficulty.
+
+Then the Englishmen asked the Spaniards if they designed to take
+any of them? But every one of them answered "No." Some of them
+said they had wives in Spain, and the others did not like women
+that were not Christians; and all together declared that they would
+not touch one of them, which was an instance of such virtue as I
+have not met with in all my travels. On the other hand, the five
+Englishmen took them every one a wife, that is to say, a temporary
+wife; and so they set up a new form of living; for the Spaniards
+and Friday's father lived in my old habitation, which they had
+enlarged exceedingly within. The three servants which were taken
+in the last battle of the savages lived with them; and these
+carried on the main part of the colony, supplied all the rest with
+food, and assisted them in anything as they could, or as they found
+necessity required.
+
+But the wonder of the story was, how five such refractory, ill-
+matched fellows should agree about these women, and that some two
+of them should not choose the same woman, especially seeing two or
+three of them were, without comparison, more agreeable than the
+others; but they took a good way enough to prevent quarrelling
+among themselves, for they set the five women by themselves in one
+of their huts, and they went all into the other hut, and drew lots
+among them who should choose first.
+
+Him that drew to choose first went away by himself to the hut where
+the poor naked creatures were, and fetched out her he chose; and it
+was worth observing, that he that chose first took her that was
+reckoned the homeliest and oldest of the five, which made mirth
+enough amongst the rest; and even the Spaniards laughed at it; but
+the fellow considered better than any of them, that it was
+application and business they were to expect assistance in, as much
+as in anything else; and she proved the best wife of all the
+parcel.
+
+When the poor women saw themselves set in a row thus, and fetched
+out one by one, the terrors of their condition returned upon them
+again, and they firmly believed they were now going to be devoured.
+Accordingly, when the English sailor came in and fetched out one of
+them, the rest set up a most lamentable cry, and hung about her,
+and took their leave of her with such agonies and affection as
+would have grieved the hardest heart in the world: nor was it
+possible for the Englishmen to satisfy them that they were not to
+be immediately murdered, till they fetched the old man, Friday's
+father, who immediately let them know that the five men, who were
+to fetch them out one by one, had chosen them for their wives.
+When they had done, and the fright the women were in was a little
+over, the men went to work, and the Spaniards came and helped them:
+and in a few hours they had built them every one a new hut or tent
+for their lodging apart; for those they had already were crowded
+with their tools, household stuff, and provisions. The three
+wicked ones had pitched farthest off, and the two honest ones
+nearer, but both on the north shore of the island, so that they
+continued separated as before; and thus my island was peopled in
+three places, and, as I might say, three towns were begun to be
+built.
+
+And here it is very well worth observing that, as it often happens
+in the world (what the wise ends in God's providence are, in such a
+disposition of things, I cannot say), the two honest fellows had
+the two worst wives; and the three reprobates, that were scarce
+worth hanging, that were fit for nothing, and neither seemed born
+to do themselves good nor any one else, had three clever, careful,
+and ingenious wives; not that the first two were bad wives as to
+their temper or humour, for all the five were most willing, quiet,
+passive, and subjected creatures, rather like slaves than wives;
+but my meaning is, they were not alike capable, ingenious, or
+industrious, or alike cleanly and neat. Another observation I must
+make, to the honour of a diligent application on one hand, and to
+the disgrace of a slothful, negligent, idle temper on the other,
+that when I came to the place, and viewed the several improvements,
+plantings, and management of the several little colonies, the two
+men had so far out-gone the three, that there was no comparison.
+They had, indeed, both of them as much ground laid out for corn as
+they wanted, and the reason was, because, according to my rule,
+nature dictated that it was to no purpose to sow more corn than
+they wanted; but the difference of the cultivation, of the
+planting, of the fences, and indeed, of everything else, was easy
+to be seen at first view.
+
+The two men had innumerable young trees planted about their huts,
+so that, when you came to the place, nothing was to be seen but a
+wood; and though they had twice had their plantation demolished,
+once by their own countrymen, and once by the enemy, as shall be
+shown in its place, yet they had restored all again, and everything
+was thriving and flourishing about them; they had grapes planted in
+order, and managed like a vineyard, though they had themselves
+never seen anything of that kind; and by their good ordering their
+vines, their grapes were as good again as any of the others. They
+had also found themselves out a retreat in the thickest part of the
+woods, where, though there was not a natural cave, as I had found,
+yet they made one with incessant labour of their hands, and where,
+when the mischief which followed happened, they secured their wives
+and children so as they could never be found; they having, by
+sticking innumerable stakes and poles of the wood which, as I said,
+grew so readily, made the grove impassable, except in some places,
+when they climbed up to get over the outside part, and then went on
+by ways of their own leaving.
+
+As to the three reprobates, as I justly call them, though they were
+much civilised by their settlement compared to what they were
+before, and were not so quarrelsome, having not the same
+opportunity; yet one of the certain companions of a profligate mind
+never left them, and that was their idleness. It is true, they
+planted corn and made fences; but Solomon's words were never better
+verified than in them, "I went by the vineyard of the slothful, and
+it was all overgrown with thorns": for when the Spaniards came to
+view their crop they could not see it in some places for weeds, the
+hedge had several gaps in it, where the wild goats had got in and
+eaten up the corn; perhaps here and there a dead bush was crammed
+in, to stop them out for the present, but it was only shutting the
+stable-door after the steed was stolen. Whereas, when they looked
+on the colony of the other two, there was the very face of industry
+and success upon all they did; there was not a weed to be seen in
+all their corn, or a gap in any of their hedges; and they, on the
+other hand, verified Solomon's words in another place, "that the
+diligent hand maketh rich"; for everything grew and thrived, and
+they had plenty within and without; they had more tame cattle than
+the others, more utensils and necessaries within doors, and yet
+more pleasure and diversion too.
+
+It is true, the wives of the three were very handy and cleanly
+within doors; and having learned the English ways of dressing, and
+cooking from one of the other Englishmen, who, as I said, was a
+cook's mate on board the ship, they dressed their husbands'
+victuals very nicely and well; whereas the others could not be
+brought to understand it; but then the husband, who, as I say, had
+been cook's mate, did it himself. But as for the husbands of the
+three wives, they loitered about, fetched turtles' eggs, and caught
+fish and birds: in a word, anything but labour; and they fared
+accordingly. The diligent lived well and comfortably, and the
+slothful hard and beggarly; and so, I believe, generally speaking,
+it is all over the world.
+
+But I now come to a scene different from all that had happened
+before, either to them or to me; and the origin of the story was
+this: Early one morning there came on shore five or six canoes of
+Indians or savages, call them which you please, and there is no
+room to doubt they came upon the old errand of feeding upon their
+slaves; but that part was now so familiar to the Spaniards, and to
+our men too, that they did not concern themselves about it, as I
+did: but having been made sensible, by their experience, that
+their only business was to lie concealed, and that if they were not
+seen by any of the savages they would go off again quietly, when
+their business was done, having as yet not the least notion of
+there being any inhabitants in the island; I say, having been made
+sensible of this, they had nothing to do but to give notice to all
+the three plantations to keep within doors, and not show
+themselves, only placing a scout in a proper place, to give notice
+when the boats went to sea again.
+
+This was, without doubt, very right; but a disaster spoiled all
+these measures, and made it known among the savages that there were
+inhabitants there; which was, in the end, the desolation of almost
+the whole colony. After the canoes with the savages were gone off,
+the Spaniards peeped abroad again; and some of them had the
+curiosity to go to the place where they had been, to see what they
+had been doing. Here, to their great surprise, they found three
+savages left behind, and lying fast asleep upon the ground. It was
+supposed they had either been so gorged with their inhuman feast,
+that, like beasts, they were fallen asleep, and would not stir when
+the others went, or they had wandered into the woods, and did not
+come back in time to be taken in.
+
+The Spaniards were greatly surprised at this sight and perfectly at
+a loss what to do. The Spaniard governor, as it happened, was with
+them, and his advice was asked, but he professed he knew not what
+to do. As for slaves, they had enough already; and as to killing
+them, there were none of them inclined to do that: the Spaniard
+governor told me they could not think of shedding innocent blood;
+for as to them, the poor creatures had done them no wrong, invaded
+none of their property, and they thought they had no just quarrel
+against them, to take away their lives. And here I must, in
+justice to these Spaniards, observe that, let the accounts of
+Spanish cruelty in Mexico and Peru be what they will, I never met
+with seventeen men of any nation whatsoever, in any foreign
+country, who were so universally modest, temperate, virtuous, so
+very good-humoured, and so courteous, as these Spaniards: and as
+to cruelty, they had nothing of it in their very nature; no
+inhumanity, no barbarity, no outrageous passions; and yet all of
+them men of great courage and spirit. Their temper and calmness
+had appeared in their bearing the insufferable usage of the three
+Englishmen; and their justice and humanity appeared now in the case
+of the savages above. After some consultation they resolved upon
+this; that they would lie still a while longer, till, if possible,
+these three men might be gone. But then the governor recollected
+that the three savages had no boat; and if they were left to rove
+about the island, they would certainly discover that there were
+inhabitants in it; and so they should be undone that way. Upon
+this, they went back again, and there lay the fellows fast asleep
+still, and so they resolved to awaken them, and take them
+prisoners; and they did so. The poor fellows were strangely
+frightened when they were seized upon and bound; and afraid, like
+the women, that they should be murdered and eaten: for it seems
+those people think all the world does as they do, in eating men's
+flesh; but they were soon made easy as to that, and away they
+carried them.
+
+It was very happy for them that they did not carry them home to the
+castle, I mean to my palace under the hill; but they carried them
+first to the bower, where was the chief of their country work, such
+as the keeping the goats, the planting the corn, &c.; and afterward
+they carried them to the habitation of the two Englishmen. Here
+they were set to work, though it was not much they had for them to
+do; and whether it was by negligence in guarding them, or that they
+thought the fellows could not mend themselves, I know not, but one
+of them ran away, and, taking to the woods, they could never hear
+of him any more. They had good reason to believe he got home again
+soon after in some other boats or canoes of savages who came on
+shore three or four weeks afterwards, and who, carrying on their
+revels as usual, went off in two days' time. This thought
+terrified them exceedingly; for they concluded, and that not
+without good cause indeed, that if this fellow came home safe among
+his comrades, he would certainly give them an account that there
+were people in the island, and also how few and weak they were; for
+this savage, as observed before, had never been told, and it was
+very happy he had not, how many there were or where they lived; nor
+had he ever seen or heard the fire of any of their guns, much less
+had they shown him any of their other retired places; such as the
+cave in the valley, or the new retreat which the two Englishmen had
+made, and the like.
+
+The first testimony they had that this fellow had given
+intelligence of them was, that about two mouths after this six
+canoes of savages, with about seven, eight, or ten men in a canoe,
+came rowing along the north side of the island, where they never
+used to come before, and landed, about an hour after sunrise, at a
+convenient place, about a mile from the habitation of the two
+Englishmen, where this escaped man had been kept. As the chief
+Spaniard said, had they been all there the damage would not have
+been so much, for not a man of them would have escaped; but the
+case differed now very much, for two men to fifty was too much
+odds. The two men had the happiness to discover them about a
+league off, so that it was above an hour before they landed; and as
+they landed a mile from their huts, it was some time before they
+could come at them. Now, having great reason to believe that they
+were betrayed, the first thing they did was to bind the two slaves
+which were left, and cause two of the three men whom they brought
+with the women (who, it seems, proved very faithful to them) to
+lead them, with their two wives, and whatever they could carry away
+with them, to their retired places in the woods, which I have
+spoken of above, and there to bind the two fellows hand and foot,
+till they heard farther. In the next place, seeing the savages
+were all come on shore, and that they had bent their course
+directly that way, they opened the fences where the milch cows were
+kept, and drove them all out; leaving their goats to straggle in
+the woods, whither they pleased, that the savages might think they
+were all bred wild; but the rogue who came with them was too
+cunning for that, and gave them an account of it all, for they went
+directly to the place.
+
+When the two poor frightened men had secured their wives and goods,
+they sent the other slave they had of the three who came with the
+women, and who was at their place by accident, away to the
+Spaniards with all speed, to give them the alarm, and desire speedy
+help, and, in the meantime, they took their arms and what
+ammunition they had, and retreated towards the place in the wood
+where their wives were sent; keeping at a distance, yet so that
+they might see, if possible, which way the savages took. They had
+not gone far but that from a rising ground they could see the
+little army of their enemies come on directly to their habitation,
+and, in a moment more, could see all their huts and household stuff
+flaming up together, to their great grief and mortification; for
+this was a great loss to them, irretrievable, indeed, for some
+time. They kept their station for a while, till they found the
+savages, like wild beasts, spread themselves all over the place,
+rummaging every way, and every place they could think of, in search
+of prey; and in particular for the people, of whom now it plainly
+appeared they had intelligence.
+
+The two Englishmen seeing this, thinking themselves not secure
+where they stood, because it was likely some of the wild people
+might come that way, and they might come too many together, thought
+it proper to make another retreat about half a mile farther;
+believing, as it afterwards happened, that the further they
+strolled, the fewer would be together. Their next halt was at the
+entrance into a very thick-grown part of the woods, and where an
+old trunk of a tree stood, which was hollow and very large; and in
+this tree they both took their standing, resolving to see there
+what might offer. They had not stood there long before two of the
+savages appeared running directly that way, as if they had already
+had notice where they stood, and were coming up to attack them; and
+a little way farther they espied three more coming after them, and
+five more beyond them, all coming the same way; besides which, they
+saw seven or eight more at a distance, running another way; for in
+a word, they ran every way, like sportsmen beating for their game.
+
+The poor men were now in great perplexity whether they should stand
+and keep their posture or fly; but after a very short debate with
+themselves, they considered that if the savages ranged the country
+thus before help came, they might perhaps find their retreat in the
+woods, and then all would be lost; so they resolved to stand them
+there, and if they were too many to deal with, then they would get
+up to the top of the tree, from whence they doubted not to defend
+themselves, fire excepted, as long as their ammunition lasted,
+though all the savages that were landed, which was near fifty, were
+to attack them.
+
+Having resolved upon this, they next considered whether they should
+fire at the first two, or wait for the three, and so take the
+middle party, by which the two and the five that followed would be
+separated; at length they resolved to let the first two pass by,
+unless they should spy them the tree, and come to attack them. The
+first two savages confirmed them also in this resolution, by
+turning a little from them towards another part of the wood; but
+the three, and the five after them, came forward directly to the
+tree, as if they had known the Englishmen were there. Seeing them
+come so straight towards them, they resolved to take them in a line
+as they came: and as they resolved to fire but one at a time,
+perhaps the first shot might hit them all three; for which purpose
+the man who was to fire put three or four small bullets into his
+piece; and having a fair loophole, as it were, from a broken hole
+in the tree, he took a sure aim, without being seen, waiting till
+they were within about thirty yards of the tree, so that he could
+not miss.
+
+While they were thus waiting, and the savages came on, they plainly
+saw that one of the three was the runaway savage that had escaped
+from them; and they both knew him distinctly, and resolved that, if
+possible, he should not escape, though they should both fire; so
+the other stood ready with his piece, that if he did not drop at
+the first shot, he should be sure to have a second. But the first
+was too good a marksman to miss his aim; for as the savages kept
+near one another, a little behind in a line, he fired, and hit two
+of them directly; the foremost was killed outright, being shot in
+the head; the second, which was the runaway Indian, was shot
+through the body, and fell, but was not quite dead; and the third
+had a little scratch in the shoulder, perhaps by the same ball that
+went through the body of the second; and being dreadfully
+frightened, though not so much hurt, sat down upon the ground,
+screaming and yelling in a hideous manner.
+
+The five that were behind, more frightened with the noise than
+sensible of the danger, stood still at first; for the woods made
+the sound a thousand times bigger than it really was, the echoes
+rattling from one side to another, and the fowls rising from all
+parts, screaming, and every sort making a different noise,
+according to their kind; just as it was when I fired the first gun
+that perhaps was ever shot off in the island.
+
+However, all being silent again, and they not knowing what the
+matter was, came on unconcerned, till they came to the place where
+their companions lay in a condition miserable enough. Here the
+poor ignorant creatures, not sensible that they were within reach
+of the same mischief, stood all together over the wounded man,
+talking, and, as may be supposed, inquiring of him how he came to
+be hurt; and who, it is very rational to believe, told them that a
+flash of fire first, and immediately after that thunder from their
+gods, had killed those two and wounded him. This, I say, is
+rational; for nothing is more certain than that, as they saw no man
+near them, so they had never heard a gun in all their lives, nor so
+much as heard of a gun; neither knew they anything of killing and
+wounding at a distance with fire and bullets: if they had, one
+might reasonably believe they would not have stood so unconcerned
+to view the fate of their fellows, without some apprehensions of
+their own.
+
+Our two men, as they confessed to me, were grieved to be obliged to
+kill so many poor creatures, who had no notion of their danger;
+yet, having them all thus in their power, and the first having
+loaded his piece again, resolved to let fly both together among
+them; and singling out, by agreement, which to aim at, they shot
+together, and killed, or very much wounded, four of them; the
+fifth, frightened even to death, though not hurt, fell with the
+rest; so that our men, seeing them all fall together, thought they
+had killed them all.
+
+The belief that the savages were all killed made our two men come
+boldly out from the tree before they had charged their guns, which
+was a wrong step; and they were under some surprise when they came
+to the place, and found no less than four of them alive, and of
+them two very little hurt, and one not at all. This obliged them
+to fall upon them with the stocks of their muskets; and first they
+made sure of the runaway savage, that had been the cause of all the
+mischief, and of another that was hurt in the knee, and put them
+out of their pain; then the man that was not hurt at all came and
+kneeled down to them, with his two hands held up, and made piteous
+moans to them, by gestures and signs, for his life, but could not
+say one word to them that they could understand. However, they
+made signs to him to sit down at the foot of a tree hard by; and
+one of the Englishmen, with a piece of rope-yarn, which he had by
+great chance in his pocket, tied his two hands behind him, and
+there they left him; and with what speed they could made after the
+other two, which were gone before, fearing they, or any more of
+them, should find way to their covered place in the woods, where
+their wives, and the few goods they had left, lay. They came once
+in sight of the two men, but it was at a great distance; however,
+they had the satisfaction to see them cross over a valley towards
+the sea, quite the contrary way from that which led to their
+retreat, which they were afraid of; and being satisfied with that,
+they went back to the tree where they left their prisoner, who, as
+they supposed, was delivered by his comrades, for he was gone, and
+the two pieces of rope-yarn with which they had bound him lay just
+at the foot of the tree.
+
+They were now in as great concern as before, not knowing what
+course to take, or how near the enemy might be, or in what number;
+so they resolved to go away to the place where their wives were, to
+see if all was well there, and to make them easy. These were in
+fright enough, to be sure; for though the savages were their own
+countrymen, yet they were most terribly afraid of them, and perhaps
+the more for the knowledge they had of them. When they came there,
+they found the savages had been in the wood, and very near that
+place, but had not found it; for it was indeed inaccessible, from
+the trees standing so thick, unless the persons seeking it had been
+directed by those that knew it, which these did not: they found,
+therefore, everything very safe, only the women in a terrible
+fright. While they were here they had the comfort to have seven of
+the Spaniards come to their assistance; the other ten, with their
+servants, and Friday's father, were gone in a body to defend their
+bower, and the corn and cattle that were kept there, in case the
+savages should have roved over to that side of the country, but
+they did not spread so far. With the seven Spaniards came one of
+the three savages, who, as I said, were their prisoners formerly;
+and with them also came the savage whom the Englishmen had left
+bound hand and foot at the tree; for it seems they came that way,
+saw the slaughter of the seven men, and unbound the eighth, and
+brought him along with them; where, however, they were obliged to
+bind again, as they had the two others who were left when the third
+ran away.
+
+The prisoners now began to be a burden to them; and they were so
+afraid of their escaping, that they were once resolving to kill
+them all, believing they were under an absolute necessity to do so
+for their own preservation. However, the chief of the Spaniards
+would not consent to it, but ordered, for the present, that they
+should be sent out of the way to my old cave in the valley, and be
+kept there, with two Spaniards to guard them, and have food for
+their subsistence, which was done; and they were bound there hand
+and foot for that night.
+
+When the Spaniards came, the two Englishmen were so encouraged,
+that they could not satisfy themselves to stay any longer there;
+but taking five of the Spaniards, and themselves, with four muskets
+and a pistol among them, and two stout quarter-staves, away they
+went in quest of the savages. And first they came to the tree
+where the men lay that had been killed; but it was easy to see that
+some more of the savages had been there, for they had attempted to
+carry their dead men away, and had dragged two of them a good way,
+but had given it over. From thence they advanced to the first
+rising ground, where they had stood and seen their camp destroyed,
+and where they had the mortification still to see some of the
+smoke; but neither could they here see any of the savages. They
+then resolved, though with all possible caution, to go forward
+towards their ruined plantation; but, a little before they came
+thither, coming in sight of the sea-shore, they saw plainly the
+savages all embarked again in their canoes, in order to be gone.
+They seemed sorry at first that there was no way to come at them,
+to give them a parting blow; but, upon the whole, they were very
+well satisfied to be rid of them.
+
+The poor Englishmen being now twice ruined, and all their
+improvements destroyed, the rest all agreed to come and help them
+to rebuild, and assist them with needful supplies. Their three
+countrymen, who were not yet noted for having the least inclination
+to do any good, yet as soon as they heard of it (for they, living
+remote eastward, knew nothing of the matter till all was over),
+came and offered their help and assistance, and did, very friendly,
+work for several days to restore their habitation and make
+necessaries for them. And thus in a little time they were set upon
+their legs again.
+
+About two days after this they had the farther satisfaction of
+seeing three of the savages' canoes come driving on shore, and, at
+some distance from them, two drowned men, by which they had reason
+to believe that they had met with a storm at sea, which had overset
+some of them; for it had blown very hard the night after they went
+off. However, as some might miscarry, so, on the other hand,
+enough of them escaped to inform the rest, as well of what they had
+done as of what had happened to them; and to whet them on to
+another enterprise of the same nature, which they, it seems,
+resolved to attempt, with sufficient force to carry all before
+them; for except what the first man had told them of inhabitants,
+they could say little of it of their own knowledge, for they never
+saw one man; and the fellow being killed that had affirmed it, they
+had no other witness to confirm it to, them.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V--A GREAT VICTORY
+
+
+
+It was five or six months after this before they heard any more of
+the savages, in which time our men were in hopes they had either
+forgot their former bad luck, or given over hopes of better; when,
+on a sudden, they were invaded with a most formidable fleet of no
+less than eight-and-twenty canoes, full of savages, armed with bows
+and arrows, great clubs, wooden swords, and such like engines of
+war; and they brought such numbers with them, that, in short, it
+put all our people into the utmost consternation.
+
+As they came on shore in the evening, and at the easternmost side
+of the island, our men had that night to consult and consider what
+to do. In the first place, knowing that their being entirely
+concealed was their only safety before and would be much more so
+now, while the number of their enemies would be so great, they
+resolved, first of all, to take down the huts which were built for
+the two Englishmen, and drive away their goats to the old cave;
+because they supposed the savages would go directly thither, as
+soon as it was day, to play the old game over again, though they
+did not now land within two leagues of it. In the next place, they
+drove away all the flocks of goats they had at the old bower, as I
+called it, which belonged to the Spaniards; and, in short, left as
+little appearance of inhabitants anywhere as was possible; and the
+next morning early they posted themselves, with all their force, at
+the plantation of the two men, to wait for their coming. As they
+guessed, so it happened: these new invaders, leaving their canoes
+at the east end of the island, came ranging along the shore,
+directly towards the place, to the number of two hundred and fifty,
+as near as our men could judge. Our army was but small indeed;
+but, that which was worse, they had not arms for all their number.
+The whole account, it seems, stood thus: first, as to men,
+seventeen Spaniards, five Englishmen, old Friday, the three slaves
+taken with the women, who proved very faithful, and three other
+slaves, who lived with the Spaniards. To arm these, they had
+eleven muskets, five pistols, three fowling-pieces, five muskets or
+fowling-pieces which were taken by me from the mutinous seamen whom
+I reduced, two swords, and three old halberds.
+
+To their slaves they did not give either musket or fusee; but they
+had each a halberd, or a long staff, like a quarter-staff, with a
+great spike of iron fastened into each end of it, and by his side a
+hatchet; also every one of our men had a hatchet. Two of the women
+could not be prevailed upon but they would come into the fight, and
+they had bows and arrows, which the Spaniards had taken from the
+savages when the first action happened, which I have spoken of,
+where the Indians fought with one another; and the women had
+hatchets too.
+
+The chief Spaniard, whom I described so often, commanded the whole;
+and Will Atkins, who, though a dreadful fellow for wickedness, was
+a most daring, bold fellow, commanded under him. The savages came
+forward like lions; and our men, which was the worst of their fate,
+had no advantage in their situation; only that Will Atkins, who now
+proved a most useful fellow, with six men, was planted just behind
+a small thicket of bushes as an advanced guard, with orders to let
+the first of them pass by and then fire into the middle of them,
+and as soon as he had fired, to make his retreat as nimbly as he
+could round a part of the wood, and so come in behind the
+Spaniards, where they stood, having a thicket of trees before them.
+
+When the savages came on, they ran straggling about every way in
+heaps, out of all manner of order, and Will Atkins let about fifty
+of them pass by him; then seeing the rest come in a very thick
+throng, he orders three of his men to fire, having loaded their
+muskets with six or seven bullets apiece, about as big as large
+pistol-bullets. How many they killed or wounded they knew not, but
+the consternation and surprise was inexpressible among the savages;
+they were frightened to the last degree to hear such a dreadful
+noise, and see their men killed, and others hurt, but see nobody
+that did it; when, in the middle of their fright, Will Atkins and
+his other three let fly again among the thickest of them; and in
+less than a minute the first three, being loaded again, gave them a
+third volley.
+
+Had Will Atkins and his men retired immediately, as soon as they
+had fired, as they were ordered to do, or had the rest of the body
+been at hand to have poured in their shot continually, the savages
+had been effectually routed; for the terror that was among them
+came principally from this, that they were killed by the gods with
+thunder and lightning, and could see nobody that hurt them. But
+Will Atkins, staying to load again, discovered the cheat: some of
+the savages who were at a distance spying them, came upon them
+behind; and though Atkins and his men fired at them also, two or
+three times, and killed above twenty, retiring as fast as they
+could, yet they wounded Atkins himself, and killed one of his
+fellow-Englishmen with their arrows, as they did afterwards one
+Spaniard, and one of the Indian slaves who came with the women.
+This slave was a most gallant fellow, and fought most desperately,
+killing five of them with his own hand, having no weapon but one of
+the armed staves and a hatchet.
+
+Our men being thus hard laid at, Atkins wounded, and two other men
+killed, retreated to a rising ground in the wood; and the
+Spaniards, after firing three volleys upon them, retreated also;
+for their number was so great, and they were so desperate, that
+though above fifty of them were killed, and more than as many
+wounded, yet they came on in the teeth of our men, fearless of
+danger, and shot their arrows like a cloud; and it was observed
+that their wounded men, who were not quite disabled, were made
+outrageous by their wounds, and fought like madmen.
+
+When our men retreated, they left the Spaniard and the Englishman
+that were killed behind them: and the savages, when they came up
+to them, killed them over again in a wretched manner, breaking
+their arms, legs, and heads, with their clubs and wooden swords,
+like true savages; but finding our men were gone, they did not seem
+inclined to pursue them, but drew themselves up in a ring, which
+is, it seems, their custom, and shouted twice, in token of their
+victory; after which, they had the mortification to see several of
+their wounded men fall, dying with the mere loss of blood.
+
+The Spaniard governor having drawn his little body up together upon
+a rising ground, Atkins, though he was wounded, would have had them
+march and charge again all together at once: but the Spaniard
+replied, "Seignior Atkins, you see how their wounded men fight; let
+them alone till morning; all the wounded men will be stiff and sore
+with their wounds, and faint with the loss of blood; and so we
+shall have the fewer to engage." This advice was good: but Will
+Atkins replied merrily, "That is true, seignior, and so shall I
+too; and that is the reason I would go on while I am warm." "Well,
+Seignior Atkins," says the Spaniard, "you have behaved gallantly,
+and done your part; we will fight for you if you cannot come on;
+but I think it best to stay till morning:" so they waited.
+
+But as it was a clear moonlight night, and they found the savages
+in great disorder about their dead and wounded men, and a great
+noise and hurry among them where they lay, they afterwards resolved
+to fall upon them in the night, especially if they could come to
+give them but one volley before they were discovered, which they
+had a fair opportunity to do; for one of the Englishmen in whose
+quarter it was where the fight began, led them round between the
+woods and the seaside westward, and then turning short south, they
+came so near where the thickest of them lay, that before they were
+seen or heard eight of them fired in among them, and did dreadful
+execution upon them; in half a minute more eight others fired after
+them, pouring in their small shot in such a quantity that abundance
+were killed and wounded; and all this while they were not able to
+see who hurt them, or which way to fly.
+
+The Spaniards charged again with the utmost expedition, and then
+divided themselves into three bodies, and resolved to fall in among
+them all together. They had in each body eight persons, that is to
+say, twenty-two men and the two women, who, by the way, fought
+desperately. They divided the firearms equally in each party, as
+well as the halberds and staves. They would have had the women
+kept back, but they said they were resolved to die with their
+husbands. Having thus formed their little army, they marched out
+from among the trees, and came up to the teeth of the enemy,
+shouting and hallooing as loud as they could; the savages stood all
+together, but were in the utmost confusion, hearing the noise of
+our men shouting from three quarters together. They would have
+fought if they had seen us; for as soon as we came near enough to
+be seen, some arrows were shot, and poor old Friday was wounded,
+though not dangerously. But our men gave them no time, but running
+up to them, fired among them three ways, and then fell in with the
+butt-ends of their muskets, their swords, armed staves, and
+hatchets, and laid about them so well that, in a word, they set up
+a dismal screaming and howling, flying to save their lives which
+way soever they could.
+
+Our men were tired with the execution, and killed or mortally
+wounded in the two fights about one hundred and eighty of them; the
+rest, being frightened out of their wits, scoured through the woods
+and over the hills, with all the speed that fear and nimble feet
+could help them to; and as we did not trouble ourselves much to
+pursue them, they got all together to the seaside, where they
+landed, and where their canoes lay. But their disaster was not at
+an end yet; for it blew a terrible storm of wind that evening from
+the sea, so that it was impossible for them to go off; nay, the
+storm continuing all night, when the tide came up their canoes were
+most of them driven by the surge of the sea so high upon the shore
+that it required infinite toil to get them off; and some of them
+were even dashed to pieces against the beach. Our men, though glad
+of their victory, yet got little rest that night; but having
+refreshed themselves as well as they could, they resolved to march
+to that part of the island where the savages were fled, and see
+what posture they were in. This necessarily led them over the
+place where the fight had been, and where they found several of the
+poor creatures not quite dead, and yet past recovering life; a
+sight disagreeable enough to generous minds, for a truly great man
+though obliged by the law of battle to destroy his enemy, takes no
+delight in his misery. However, there was no need to give any
+orders in this case; for their own savages, who were their
+servants, despatched these poor creatures with their hatchets.
+
+At length they came in view of the place where the more miserable
+remains of the savages' army lay, where there appeared about a
+hundred still; their posture was generally sitting upon the ground,
+with their knees up towards their mouth, and the head put between
+the two hands, leaning down upon the knees. When our men came
+within two musket-shots of them, the Spaniard governor ordered two
+muskets to be fired without ball, to alarm them; this he did, that
+by their countenance he might know what to expect, whether they
+were still in heart to fight, or were so heartily beaten as to be
+discouraged, and so he might manage accordingly. This stratagem
+took: for as soon as the savages heard the first gun, and saw the
+flash of the second, they started up upon their feet in the
+greatest consternation imaginable; and as our men advanced swiftly
+towards them, they all ran screaming and yelling away, with a kind
+of howling noise, which our men did not understand, and had never
+heard before; and thus they ran up the hills into the country.
+
+At first our men had much rather the weather had been calm, and
+they had all gone away to sea: but they did not then consider that
+this might probably have been the occasion of their coming again in
+such multitudes as not to be resisted, or, at least, to come so
+many and so often as would quite desolate the island, and starve
+them. Will Atkins, therefore, who notwithstanding his wound kept
+always with them, proved the best counsellor in this case: his
+advice was, to take the advantage that offered, and step in between
+them and their boats, and so deprive them of the capacity of ever
+returning any more to plague the island. They consulted long about
+this; and some were against it for fear of making the wretches fly
+to the woods and live there desperate, and so they should have them
+to hunt like wild beasts, be afraid to stir out about their
+business, and have their plantations continually rifled, all their
+tame goats destroyed, and, in short, be reduced to a life of
+continual distress.
+
+Will Atkins told them they had better have to do with a hundred men
+than with a hundred nations; that, as they must destroy their
+boats, so they must destroy the men, or be all of them destroyed
+themselves. In a word, he showed them the necessity of it so
+plainly that they all came into it; so they went to work
+immediately with the boats, and getting some dry wood together from
+a dead tree, they tried to set some of them on fire, but they were
+so wet that they would not burn; however, the fire so burned the
+upper part that it soon made them unfit for use at sea.
+
+When the Indians saw what they were about, some of them came
+running out of the woods, and coming as near as they could to our
+men, kneeled down and cried, "Oa, Oa, Waramokoa," and some other
+words of their language, which none of the others understood
+anything of; but as they made pitiful gestures and strange noises,
+it was easy to understand they begged to have their boats spared,
+and that they would be gone, and never come there again. But our
+men were now satisfied that they had no way to preserve themselves,
+or to save their colony, but effectually to prevent any of these
+people from ever going home again; depending upon this, that if
+even so much as one of them got back into their country to tell the
+story, the colony was undone; so that, letting them know that they
+should not have any mercy, they fell to work with their canoes, and
+destroyed every one that the storm had not destroyed before; at the
+sight of which, the savages raised a hideous cry in the woods,
+which our people heard plain enough, after which they ran about the
+island like distracted men, so that, in a word, our men did not
+really know what at first to do with them. Nor did the Spaniards,
+with all their prudence, consider that while they made those people
+thus desperate, they ought to have kept a good guard at the same
+time upon their plantations; for though it is true they had driven
+away their cattle, and the Indians did not find out their main
+retreat, I mean my old castle at the hill, nor the cave in the
+valley, yet they found out my plantation at the bower, and pulled
+it all to pieces, and all the fences and planting about it; trod
+all the corn under foot, tore up the vines and grapes, being just
+then almost ripe, and did our men inestimable damage, though to
+themselves not one farthing's worth of service.
+
+Though our men were able to fight them upon all occasions, yet they
+were in no condition to pursue them, or hunt them up and down; for
+as they were too nimble of foot for our people when they found them
+single, so our men durst not go abroad single, for fear of being
+surrounded with their numbers. The best was they had no weapons;
+for though they had bows, they had no arrows left, nor any
+materials to make any; nor had they any edge-tool among them. The
+extremity and distress they were reduced to was great, and indeed
+deplorable; but, at the same time, our men were also brought to
+very bad circumstances by them, for though their retreats were
+preserved, yet their provision was destroyed, and their harvest
+spoiled, and what to do, or which way to turn themselves, they knew
+not. The only refuge they had now was the stock of cattle they had
+in the valley by the cave, and some little corn which grew there,
+and the plantation of the three Englishmen. Will Atkins and his
+comrades were now reduced to two; one of them being killed by an
+arrow, which struck him on the side of his head, just under the
+temple, so that he never spoke more; and it was very remarkable
+that this was the same barbarous fellow that cut the poor savage
+slave with his hatchet, and who afterwards intended to have
+murdered the Spaniards.
+
+I looked upon their case to have been worse at this time than mine
+was at any time, after I first discovered the grains of barley and
+rice, and got into the manner of planting and raising my corn, and
+my tame cattle; for now they had, as I may say, a hundred wolves
+upon the island, which would devour everything they could come at,
+yet could be hardly come at themselves.
+
+When they saw what their circumstances were, the first thing they
+concluded was, that they would, if possible, drive the savages up
+to the farther part of the island, south-west, that if any more
+came on shore they might not find one another; then, that they
+would daily hunt and harass them, and kill as many of them as they
+could come at, till they had reduced their number; and if they
+could at last tame them, and bring them to anything, they would
+give them corn, and teach them how to plant, and live upon their
+daily labour. In order to do this, they so followed them, and so
+terrified them with their guns, that in a few days, if any of them
+fired a gun at an Indian, if he did not hit him, yet he would fall
+down for fear. So dreadfully frightened were they that they kept
+out of sight farther and farther; till at last our men followed
+them, and almost every day killing or wounding some of them, they
+kept up in the woods or hollow places so much, that it reduced them
+to the utmost misery for want of food; and many were afterwards
+found dead in the woods, without any hurt, absolutely starved to
+death.
+
+When our men found this, it made their hearts relent, and pity
+moved them, especially the generous-minded Spaniard governor; and
+he proposed, if possible, to take one of them alive and bring him
+to understand what they meant, so far as to be able to act as
+interpreter, and go among them and see if they might be brought to
+some conditions that might be depended upon, to save their lives
+and do us no harm.
+
+It was some while before any of them could be taken; but being weak
+and half-starved, one of them was at last surprised and made a
+prisoner. He was sullen at first, and would neither eat nor drink;
+but finding himself kindly used, and victuals given to him, and no
+violence offered him, he at last grew tractable, and came to
+himself. They often brought old Friday to talk to him, who always
+told him how kind the others would be to them all; that they would
+not only save their lives, but give them part of the island to live
+in, provided they would give satisfaction that they would keep in
+their own bounds, and not come beyond it to injure or prejudice
+others; and that they should have corn given them to plant and make
+it grow for their bread, and some bread given them for their
+present subsistence; and old Friday bade the fellow go and talk
+with the rest of his countrymen, and see what they said to it;
+assuring them that, if they did not agree immediately, they should
+be all destroyed.
+
+The poor wretches, thoroughly humbled, and reduced in number to
+about thirty-seven, closed with the proposal at the first offer,
+and begged to have some food given them; upon which twelve
+Spaniards and two Englishmen, well armed, with three Indian slaves
+and old Friday, marched to the place where they were. The three
+Indian slaves carried them a large quantity of bread, some rice
+boiled up to cakes and dried in the sun, and three live goats; and
+they were ordered to go to the side of a hill, where they sat down,
+ate their provisions very thankfully, and were the most faithful
+fellows to their words that could be thought of; for, except when
+they came to beg victuals and directions, they never came out of
+their bounds; and there they lived when I came to the island and I
+went to see them. They had taught them both to plant corn, make
+bread, breed tame goats, and milk them: they wanted nothing but
+wives in order for them soon to become a nation. They were
+confined to a neck of land, surrounded with high rocks behind them,
+and lying plain towards the sea before them, on the south-east
+corner of the island. They had land enough, and it was very good
+and fruitful; about a mile and a half broad, and three or four
+miles in length. Our men taught them to make wooden spades, such
+as I made for myself, and gave among them twelve hatchets and three
+or four knives; and there they lived, the most subjected, innocent
+creatures that ever were heard of.
+
+After this the colony enjoyed a perfect tranquillity with respect
+to the savages, till I came to revisit them, which was about two
+years after; not but that, now and then, some canoes of savages
+came on shore for their triumphal, unnatural feasts; but as they
+were of several nations, and perhaps had never heard of those that
+came before, or the reason of it, they did not make any search or
+inquiry after their countrymen; and if they had, it would have been
+very hard to have found them out.
+
+Thus, I think, I have given a full account of all that happened to
+them till my return, at least that was worth notice. The Indians
+were wonderfully civilised by them, and they frequently went among
+them; but they forbid, on pain of death, any one of the Indians
+coming to them, because they would not have their settlement
+betrayed again. One thing was very remarkable, viz. that they
+taught the savages to make wicker-work, or baskets, but they soon
+outdid their masters: for they made abundance of ingenious things
+in wicker-work, particularly baskets, sieves, bird-cages,
+cupboards, &c.; as also chairs, stools, beds, couches, being very
+ingenious at such work when they were once put in the way of it.
+
+My coming was a particular relief to these people, because we
+furnished them with knives, scissors, spades, shovels, pick-axes,
+and all things of that kind which they could want. With the help
+of those tools they were so very handy that they came at last to
+build up their huts or houses very handsomely, raddling or working
+it up like basket-work all the way round. This piece of ingenuity,
+although it looked very odd, was an exceeding good fence, as well
+against heat as against all sorts of vermin; and our men were so
+taken with it that they got the Indians to come and do the like for
+them; so that when I came to see the two Englishmen's colonies,
+they looked at a distance as if they all lived like bees in a hive.
+
+As for Will Atkins, who was now become a very industrious, useful,
+and sober fellow, he had made himself such a tent of basket-work as
+I believe was never seen; it was one hundred and twenty paces round
+on the outside, as I measured by my steps; the walls were as close
+worked as a basket, in panels or squares of thirty-two in number,
+and very strong, standing about seven feet high; in the middle was
+another not above twenty-two paces round, but built stronger, being
+octagon in its form, and in the eight corners stood eight very
+strong posts; round the top of which he laid strong pieces, knit
+together with wooden pins, from which he raised a pyramid for a
+handsome roof of eight rafters, joined together very well, though
+he had no nails, and only a few iron spikes, which he made himself,
+too, out of the old iron that I had left there. Indeed, this
+fellow showed abundance of ingenuity in several things which he had
+no knowledge of: he made him a forge, with a pair of wooden
+bellows to blow the fire; he made himself charcoal for his work;
+and he formed out of the iron crows a middling good anvil to hammer
+upon: in this manner he made many things, but especially hooks,
+staples, and spikes, bolts and hinges. But to return to the house:
+after he had pitched the roof of his innermost tent, he worked it
+up between the rafters with basket-work, so firm, and thatched that
+over again so ingeniously with rice-straw, and over that a large
+leaf of a tree, which covered the top, that his house was as dry as
+if it had been tiled or slated. He owned, indeed, that the savages
+had made the basket-work for him. The outer circuit was covered as
+a lean-to all round this inner apartment, and long rafters lay from
+the thirty-two angles to the top posts of the inner house, being
+about twenty feet distant, so that there was a space like a walk
+within the outer wicker-wall, and without the inner, near twenty
+feet wide.
+
+The inner place he partitioned off with the same wickerwork, but
+much fairer, and divided into six apartments, so that he had six
+rooms on a floor, and out of every one of these there was a door:
+first into the entry, or coming into the main tent, another door
+into the main tent, and another door into the space or walk that
+was round it; so that walk was also divided into six equal parts,
+which served not only for a retreat, but to store up any
+necessaries which the family had occasion for. These six spaces
+not taking up the whole circumference, what other apartments the
+outer circle had were thus ordered: As soon as you were in at the
+door of the outer circle you had a short passage straight before
+you to the door of the inner house; but on either side was a wicker
+partition and a door in it, by which you went first into a large
+room or storehouse, twenty feet wide and about thirty feet long,
+and through that into another not quite so long; so that in the
+outer circle were ten handsome rooms, six of which were only to be
+come at through the apartments of the inner tent, and served as
+closets or retiring rooms to the respective chambers of the inner
+circle; and four large warehouses, or barns, or what you please to
+call them, which went through one another, two on either hand of
+the passage, that led through the outer door to the inner tent.
+Such a piece of basket-work, I believe, was never seen in the
+world, nor a house or tent so neatly contrived, much less so built.
+In this great bee-hive lived the three families, that is to say,
+Will Atkins and his companion; the third was killed, but his wife
+remained with three children, and the other two were not at all
+backward to give the widow her full share of everything, I mean as
+to their corn, milk, grapes, &c., and when they killed a kid, or
+found a turtle on the shore; so that they all lived well enough;
+though it was true they were not so industrious as the other two,
+as has been observed already.
+
+One thing, however, cannot be omitted, viz. that as for religion, I
+do not know that there was anything of that kind among them; they
+often, indeed, put one another in mind that there was a God, by the
+very common method of seamen, swearing by His name: nor were their
+poor ignorant savage wives much better for having been married to
+Christians, as we must call them; for as they knew very little of
+God themselves, so they were utterly incapable of entering into any
+discourse with their wives about a God, or to talk anything to them
+concerning religion.
+
+The utmost of all the improvement which I can say the wives had
+made from them was, that they had taught them to speak English
+pretty well; and most of their children, who were near twenty in
+all, were taught to speak English too, from their first learning to
+speak, though they at first spoke it in a very broken manner, like
+their mothers. None of these children were above six years old
+when I came thither, for it was not much above seven years since
+they had fetched these five savage ladies over; they had all
+children, more or less: the mothers were all a good sort of well-
+governed, quiet, laborious women, modest and decent, helpful to one
+another, mighty observant, and subject to their masters (I cannot
+call them husbands), and lacked nothing but to be well instructed
+in the Christian religion, and to be legally married; both of which
+were happily brought about afterwards by my means, or at least in
+consequence of my coming among them.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI--THE FRENCH CLERGYMAN'S COUNSEL
+
+
+
+Having thus given an account of the colony in general, and pretty
+much of my runagate Englishmen, I must say something of the
+Spaniards, who were the main body of the family, and in whose story
+there are some incidents also remarkable enough.
+
+I had a great many discourses with them about their circumstances
+when they were among the savages. They told me readily that they
+had no instances to give of their application or ingenuity in that
+country; that they were a poor, miserable, dejected handful of
+people; that even if means had been put into their hands, yet they
+had so abandoned themselves to despair, and were so sunk under the
+weight of their misfortune, that they thought of nothing but
+starving. One of them, a grave and sensible man, told me he was
+convinced they were in the wrong; that it was not the part of wise
+men to give themselves up to their misery, but always to take hold
+of the helps which reason offered, as well for present support as
+for future deliverance: he told me that grief was the most
+senseless, insignificant passion in the world, for that it regarded
+only things past, which were generally impossible to be recalled or
+to be remedied, but had no views of things to come, and had no
+share in anything that looked like deliverance, but rather added to
+the affliction than proposed a remedy; and upon this he repeated a
+Spanish proverb, which, though I cannot repeat in the same words
+that he spoke it in, yet I remember I made it into an English
+proverb of my own, thus:-
+
+
+"In trouble to be troubled,
+Is to have your trouble doubled."
+
+
+He then ran on in remarks upon all the little improvements I had
+made in my solitude: my unwearied application, as he called it;
+and how I had made a condition, which in its circumstances was at
+first much worse than theirs, a thousand times more happy than
+theirs was, even now when they were all together. He told me it
+was remarkable that Englishmen had a greater presence of mind in
+their distress than any people that ever he met with; that their
+unhappy nation and the Portuguese were the worst men in the world
+to struggle with misfortunes; for that their first step in dangers,
+after the common efforts were over, was to despair, lie down under
+it, and die, without rousing their thoughts up to proper remedies
+for escape.
+
+I told him their case and mine differed exceedingly; that they were
+cast upon the shore without necessaries, without supply of food, or
+present sustenance till they could provide for it; that, it was
+true, I had this further disadvantage and discomfort, that I was
+alone; but then the supplies I had providentially thrown into my
+hands, by the unexpected driving of the ship on the shore, was such
+a help as would have encouraged any creature in the world to have
+applied himself as I had done. "Seignior," says the Spaniard, "had
+we poor Spaniards been in your case, we should never have got half
+those things out of the ship, as you did: nay," says he, "we
+should never have found means to have got a raft to carry them, or
+to have got the raft on shore without boat or sail: and how much
+less should we have done if any of us had been alone!" Well, I
+desired him to abate his compliments, and go on with the history of
+their coming on shore, where they landed. He told me they
+unhappily landed at a place where there were people without
+provisions; whereas, had they had the common sense to put off to
+sea again, and gone to another island a little further, they had
+found provisions, though without people: there being an island
+that way, as they had been told, where there were provisions,
+though no people--that is to say, that the Spaniards of Trinidad
+had frequently been there, and had filled the island with goats and
+hogs at several times, where they had bred in such multitudes, and
+where turtle and sea-fowls were in such plenty, that they could
+have been in no want of flesh, though they had found no bread;
+whereas, here they were only sustained with a few roots and herbs,
+which they understood not, and which had no substance in them, and
+which the inhabitants gave them sparingly enough; and they could
+treat them no better, unless they would turn cannibals and eat
+men's flesh.
+
+They gave me an account how many ways they strove to civilise the
+savages they were with, and to teach them rational customs in the
+ordinary way of living, but in vain; and how they retorted upon
+them as unjust that they who came there for assistance and support
+should attempt to set up for instructors to those that gave them
+food; intimating, it seems, that none should set up for the
+instructors of others but those who could live without them. They
+gave me dismal accounts of the extremities they were driven to; how
+sometimes they were many days without any food at all, the island
+they were upon being inhabited by a sort of savages that lived more
+indolent, and for that reason were less supplied with the
+necessaries of life, than they had reason to believe others were in
+the same part of the world; and yet they found that these savages
+were less ravenous and voracious than those who had better supplies
+of food. Also, they added, they could not but see with what
+demonstrations of wisdom and goodness the governing providence of
+God directs the events of things in this world, which, they said,
+appeared in their circumstances: for if, pressed by the hardships
+they were under, and the barrenness of the country where they were,
+they had searched after a better to live in, they had then been out
+of the way of the relief that happened to them by my means.
+
+They then gave me an account how the savages whom they lived
+amongst expected them to go out with them into their wars; and, it
+was true, that as they had firearms with them, had they not had the
+disaster to lose their ammunition, they could have been serviceable
+not only to their friends, but have made themselves terrible both
+to friends and enemies; but being without powder and shot, and yet
+in a condition that they could not in reason decline to go out with
+their landlords to their wars; so when they came into the field of
+battle they were in a worse condition than the savages themselves,
+for they had neither bows nor arrows, nor could they use those the
+savages gave them. So they could do nothing but stand still and be
+wounded with arrows, till they came up to the teeth of the enemy;
+and then, indeed, the three halberds they had were of use to them;
+and they would often drive a whole little army before them with
+those halberds, and sharpened sticks put into the muzzles of their
+muskets. But for all this they were sometimes surrounded with
+multitudes, and in great danger from their arrows, till at last
+they found the way to make themselves large targets of wood, which
+they covered with skins of wild beasts, whose names they knew not,
+and these covered them from the arrows of the savages: that,
+notwithstanding these, they were sometimes in great danger; and
+five of them were once knocked down together with the clubs of the
+savages, which was the time when one of them was taken prisoner--
+that is to say, the Spaniard whom I relieved. At first they
+thought he had been killed; but when they afterwards heard he was
+taken prisoner, they were under the greatest grief imaginable, and
+would willingly have all ventured their lives to have rescued him.
+
+They told me that when they were so knocked down, the rest of their
+company rescued them, and stood over them fighting till they were
+come to themselves, all but him whom they thought had been dead;
+and then they made their way with their halberds and pieces,
+standing close together in a line, through a body of above a
+thousand savages, beating down all that came in their way, got the
+victory over their enemies, but to their great sorrow, because it
+was with the loss of their friend, whom the other party finding
+alive, carried off with some others, as I gave an account before.
+They described, most affectionately, how they were surprised with
+joy at the return of their friend and companion in misery, who they
+thought had been devoured by wild beasts of the worst kind--wild
+men; and yet, how more and more they were surprised with the
+account he gave them of his errand, and that there was a Christian
+in any place near, much more one that was able, and had humanity
+enough, to contribute to their deliverance.
+
+They described how they were astonished at the sight of the relief
+I sent them, and at the appearance of loaves of bread--things they
+had not seen since their coming to that miserable place; how often
+they crossed it and blessed it as bread sent from heaven; and what
+a reviving cordial it was to their spirits to taste it, as also the
+other things I had sent for their supply; and, after all, they
+would have told me something of the joy they were in at the sight
+of a boat and pilots, to carry them away to the person and place
+from whence all these new comforts came. But it was impossible to
+express it by words, for their excessive joy naturally driving them
+to unbecoming extravagances, they had no way to describe them but
+by telling me they bordered upon lunacy, having no way to give vent
+to their passions suitable to the sense that was upon them; that in
+some it worked one way and in some another; and that some of them,
+through a surprise of joy, would burst into tears, others be stark
+mad, and others immediately faint. This discourse extremely
+affected me, and called to my mind Friday's ecstasy when he met his
+father, and the poor people's ecstasy when I took them up at sea
+after their ship was on fire; the joy of the mate of the ship when
+he found himself delivered in the place where he expected to
+perish; and my own joy, when, after twenty-eight years' captivity,
+I found a good ship ready to carry me to my own country. All these
+things made me more sensible of the relation of these poor men, and
+more affected with it.
+
+Having thus given a view of the state of things as I found them, I
+must relate the heads of what I did for these people, and the
+condition in which I left them. It was their opinion, and mine
+too, that they would be troubled no more with the savages, or if
+they were, they would be able to cut them off, if they were twice
+as many as before; so they had no concern about that. Then I
+entered into a serious discourse with the Spaniard, whom I call
+governor, about their stay in the island; for as I was not come to
+carry any of them off, so it would not be just to carry off some
+and leave others, who, perhaps, would be unwilling to stay if their
+strength was diminished. On the other hand, I told them I came to
+establish them there, not to remove them; and then I let them know
+that I had brought with me relief of sundry kinds for them; that I
+had been at a great charge to supply them with all things
+necessary, as well for their convenience as their defence; and that
+I had such and such particular persons with me, as well to increase
+and recruit their number, as by the particular necessary
+employments which they were bred to, being artificers, to assist
+them in those things in which at present they were in want.
+
+They were all together when I talked thus to them; and before I
+delivered to them the stores I had brought, I asked them, one by
+one, if they had entirely forgot and buried the first animosities
+that had been among them, and would shake hands with one another,
+and engage in a strict friendship and union of interest, that so
+there might be no more misunderstandings and jealousies.
+
+Will Atkins, with abundance of frankness and good humour, said they
+had met with affliction enough to make them all sober, and enemies
+enough to make them all friends; that, for his part, he would live
+and die with them, and was so far from designing anything against
+the Spaniards, that he owned they had done nothing to him but what
+his own mad humour made necessary, and what he would have done, and
+perhaps worse, in their case; and that he would ask them pardon, if
+I desired it, for the foolish and brutish things he had done to
+them, and was very willing and desirous of living in terms of
+entire friendship and union with them, and would do anything that
+lay in his power to convince them of it; and as for going to
+England, he cared not if he did not go thither these twenty years.
+
+The Spaniards said they had, indeed, at first disarmed and excluded
+Will Atkins and his two countrymen for their ill conduct, as they
+had let me know, and they appealed to me for the necessity they
+were under to do so; but that Will Atkins had behaved himself so
+bravely in the great fight they had with the savages, and on
+several occasions since, and had showed himself so faithful to, and
+concerned for, the general interest of them all, that they had
+forgotten all that was past, and thought he merited as much to be
+trusted with arms and supplied with necessaries as any of them;
+that they had testified their satisfaction in him by committing the
+command to him next to the governor himself; and as they had entire
+confidence in him and all his countrymen, so they acknowledged they
+had merited that confidence by all the methods that honest men
+could merit to be valued and trusted; and they most heartily
+embraced the occasion of giving me this assurance, that they would
+never have any interest separate from one another.
+
+Upon these frank and open declarations of friendship, we appointed
+the next day to dine all together; and, indeed, we made a splendid
+feast. I caused the ship's cook and his mate to come on shore and
+dress our dinner, and the old cook's mate we had on shore assisted.
+We brought on shore six pieces of good beef and four pieces of
+pork, out of the ship's provisions, with our punch-bowl and
+materials to fill it; and in particular I gave them ten bottles of
+French claret, and ten bottles of English beer; things that neither
+the Spaniards nor the English had tasted for many years, and which
+it may be supposed they were very glad of. The Spaniards added to
+our feast five whole kids, which the cooks roasted; and three of
+them were sent, covered up close, on board the ship to the seamen,
+that they might feast on fresh meat from on shore, as we did with
+their salt meat from on board.
+
+After this feast, at which we were very innocently merry, I brought
+my cargo of goods; wherein, that there might be no dispute about
+dividing, I showed them that there was a sufficiency for them all,
+desiring that they might all take an equal quantity, when made up,
+of the goods that were for wearing. As, first, I distributed linen
+sufficient to make every one of them four shirts, and, at the
+Spaniard's request, afterwards made them up six; these were
+exceeding comfortable to them, having been what they had long since
+forgot the use of, or what it was to wear them. I allotted the
+thin English stuffs, which I mentioned before, to make every one a
+light coat, like a frock, which I judged fittest for the heat of
+the season, cool and loose; and ordered that whenever they decayed,
+they should make more, as they thought fit; the like for pumps,
+shoes, stockings, hats, &c. I cannot express what pleasure sat
+upon the countenances of all these poor men when they saw the care
+I had taken of them, and how well I had furnished them. They told
+me I was a father to them; and that having such a correspondent as
+I was in so remote a part of the world, it would make them forget
+that they were left in a desolate place; and they all voluntarily
+engaged to me not to leave the place without my consent.
+
+Then I presented to them the people I had brought with me,
+particularly the tailor, the smith, and the two carpenters, all of
+them most necessary people; but, above all, my general artificer,
+than whom they could not name anything that was more useful to
+them; and the tailor, to show his concern for them, went to work
+immediately, and, with my leave, made them every one a shirt, the
+first thing he did; and, what was still more, he taught the women
+not only how to sew and stitch, and use the needle, but made them
+assist to make the shirts for their husbands, and for all the rest.
+As to the carpenters, I scarce need mention how useful they were;
+for they took to pieces all my clumsy, unhandy things, and made
+clever convenient tables, stools, bedsteads, cupboards, lockers,
+shelves, and everything they wanted of that kind. But to let them
+see how nature made artificers at first, I carried the carpenters
+to see Will Atkins' basket-house, as I called it; and they both
+owned they never saw an instance of such natural ingenuity before,
+nor anything so regular and so handily built, at least of its kind;
+and one of them, when he saw it, after musing a good while, turning
+about to me, "I am sure," says he, "that man has no need of us; you
+need do nothing but give him tools."
+
+Then I brought them out all my store of tools, and gave every man a
+digging-spade, a shovel, and a rake, for we had no barrows or
+ploughs; and to every separate place a pickaxe, a crow, a broad
+axe, and a saw; always appointing, that as often as any were broken
+or worn out, they should be supplied without grudging out of the
+general stores that I left behind. Nails, staples, hinges,
+hammers, chisels, knives, scissors, and all sorts of ironwork, they
+had without reserve, as they required; for no man would take more
+than he wanted, and he must be a fool that would waste or spoil
+them on any account whatever; and for the use of the smith I left
+two tons of unwrought iron for a supply.
+
+My magazine of powder and arms which I brought them was such, even
+to profusion, that they could not but rejoice at them; for now they
+could march as I used to do, with a musket upon each shoulder, if
+there was occasion; and were able to fight a thousand savages, if
+they had but some little advantages of situation, which also they
+could not miss, if they had occasion.
+
+I carried on shore with me the young man whose mother was starved
+to death, and the maid also; she was a sober, well-educated,
+religious young woman, and behaved so inoffensively that every one
+gave her a good word; she had, indeed, an unhappy life with us,
+there being no woman in the ship but herself, but she bore it with
+patience. After a while, seeing things so well ordered, and in so
+fine a way of thriving upon my island, and considering that they
+had neither business nor acquaintance in the East Indies, or reason
+for taking so long a voyage, both of them came to me and desired I
+would give them leave to remain on the island, and be entered among
+my family, as they called it. I agreed to this readily; and they
+had a little plot of ground allotted to them, where they had three
+tents or houses set up, surrounded with a basket-work, palisadoed
+like Atkins's, adjoining to his plantation. Their tents were
+contrived so that they had each of them a room apart to lodge in,
+and a middle tent like a great storehouse to lay their goods in,
+and to eat and to drink in. And now the other two Englishmen
+removed their habitation to the same place; and so the island was
+divided into three colonies, and no more--viz. the Spaniards, with
+old Friday and the first servants, at my habitation under the hill,
+which was, in a word, the capital city, and where they had so
+enlarged and extended their works, as well under as on the outside
+of the hill, that they lived, though perfectly concealed, yet full
+at large. Never was there such a little city in a wood, and so
+hid, in any part of the world; for I verify believe that a thousand
+men might have ranged the island a month, and, if they had not
+known there was such a thing, and looked on purpose for it, they
+would not have found it. Indeed the trees stood so thick and so
+close, and grew so fast woven one into another, that nothing but
+cutting them down first could discover the place, except the only
+two narrow entrances where they went in and out could be found,
+which was not very easy; one of them was close down at the water's
+edge, on the side of the creek, and it was afterwards above two
+hundred yards to the place; and the other was up a ladder at twice,
+as I have already described it; and they had also a large wood,
+thickly planted, on the top of the hill, containing above an acre,
+which grew apace, and concealed the place from all discovery there,
+with only one narrow place between two trees, not easily to be
+discovered, to enter on that side.
+
+The other colony was that of Will Atkins, where there were four
+families of Englishmen, I mean those I had left there, with their
+wives and children; three savages that were slaves, the widow and
+children of the Englishman that was killed, the young man and the
+maid, and, by the way, we made a wife of her before we went away.
+There were besides the two carpenters and the tailor, whom I
+brought with me for them: also the smith, who was a very necessary
+man to them, especially as a gunsmith, to take care of their arms;
+and my other man, whom I called Jack-of-all-trades, who was in
+himself as good almost as twenty men; for he was not only a very
+ingenious fellow, but a very merry fellow, and before I went away
+we married him to the honest maid that came with the youth in the
+ship I mentioned before.
+
+And now I speak of marrying, it brings me naturally to say
+something of the French ecclesiastic that I had brought with me out
+of the ship's crew whom I took up at sea. It is true this man was
+a Roman, and perhaps it may give offence to some hereafter if I
+leave anything extraordinary upon record of a man whom, before I
+begin, I must (to set him out in just colours) represent in terms
+very much to his disadvantage, in the account of Protestants; as,
+first, that he was a Papist; secondly, a Popish priest; and
+thirdly, a French Popish priest. But justice demands of me to give
+him a due character; and I must say, he was a grave, sober, pious,
+and most religious person; exact in his life, extensive in his
+charity, and exemplary in almost everything he did. What then can
+any one say against being very sensible of the value of such a man,
+notwithstanding his profession? though it may be my opinion
+perhaps, as well as the opinion of others who shall read this, that
+he was mistaken.
+
+The first hour that I began to converse with him after he had
+agreed to go with me to the East Indies, I found reason to delight
+exceedingly in his conversation; and he first began with me about
+religion in the most obliging manner imaginable. "Sir," says he,
+"you have not only under God" (and at that he crossed his breast)
+"saved my life, but you have admitted me to go this voyage in your
+ship, and by your obliging civility have taken me into your family,
+giving me an opportunity of free conversation. Now, sir, you see
+by my habit what my profession is, and I guess by your nation what
+yours is; I may think it is my duty, and doubtless it is so, to use
+my utmost endeavours, on all occasions, to bring all the souls I
+can to the knowledge of the truth, and to embrace the Catholic
+doctrine; but as I am here under your permission, and in your
+family, I am bound, in justice to your kindness as well as in
+decency and good manners, to be under your government; and
+therefore I shall not, without your leave, enter into any debate on
+the points of religion in which we may not agree, further than you
+shall give me leave."
+
+I told him his carriage was so modest that I could not but
+acknowledge it; that it was true we were such people as they call
+heretics, but that he was not the first Catholic I had conversed
+with without falling into inconveniences, or carrying the questions
+to any height in debate; that he should not find himself the worse
+used for being of a different opinion from us, and if we did not
+converse without any dislike on either side, it should be his
+fault, not ours.
+
+He replied that he thought all our conversation might be easily
+separated from disputes; that it was not his business to cap
+principles with every man he conversed with; and that he rather
+desired me to converse with him as a gentleman than as a
+religionist; and that, if I would give him leave at any time to
+discourse upon religious subjects, he would readily comply with it,
+and that he did not doubt but I would allow him also to defend his
+own opinions as well as he could; but that without my leave he
+would not break in upon me with any such thing. He told me
+further, that he would not cease to do all that became him, in his
+office as a priest, as well as a private Christian, to procure the
+good of the ship, and the safety of all that was in her; and
+though, perhaps, we would not join with him, and he could not pray
+with us, he hoped he might pray for us, which he would do upon all
+occasions. In this manner we conversed; and as he was of the most
+obliging, gentlemanlike behaviour, so he was, if I may be allowed
+to say so, a man of good sense, and, as I believe, of great
+learning.
+
+He gave me a most diverting account of his life, and of the many
+extraordinary events of it; of many adventures which had befallen
+him in the few years that he had been abroad in the world; and
+particularly, it was very remarkable, that in the voyage he was now
+engaged in he had had the misfortune to be five times shipped and
+unshipped, and never to go to the place whither any of the ships he
+was in were at first designed. That his first intent was to have
+gone to Martinico, and that he went on board a ship bound thither
+at St. Malo; but being forced into Lisbon by bad weather, the ship
+received some damage by running aground in the mouth of the river
+Tagus, and was obliged to unload her cargo there; but finding a
+Portuguese ship there bound for the Madeiras, and ready to sail,
+and supposing he should meet with a ship there bound to Martinico,
+he went on board, in order to sail to the Madeiras; but the master
+of the Portuguese ship being but an indifferent mariner, had been
+out of his reckoning, and they drove to Fayal; where, however, he
+happened to find a very good market for his cargo, which was corn,
+and therefore resolved not to go to the Madeiras, but to load salt
+at the Isle of May, and to go away to Newfoundland. He had no
+remedy in this exigence but to go with the ship, and had a pretty
+good voyage as far as the Banks (so they call the place where they
+catch the fish), where, meeting with a French ship bound from
+France to Quebec, and from thence to Martinico, to carry
+provisions, he thought he should have an opportunity to complete
+his first design, but when he came to Quebec, the master of the
+ship died, and the vessel proceeded no further; so the next voyage
+he shipped himself for France, in the ship that was burned when we
+took them up at sea, and then shipped with us for the East Indies,
+as I have already said. Thus he had been disappointed in five
+voyages; all, as I may call it, in one voyage, besides what I shall
+have occasion to mention further of him.
+
+But I shall not make digression into other men's stories which have
+no relation to my own; so I return to what concerns our affair in
+the island. He came to me one morning (for he lodged among us all
+the while we were upon the island), and it happened to be just when
+I was going to visit the Englishmen's colony, at the furthest part
+of the island; I say, he came to me, and told me, with a very grave
+countenance, that he had for two or three days desired an
+opportunity of some discourse with me, which he hoped would not be
+displeasing to me, because he thought it might in some measure
+correspond with my general design, which was the prosperity of my
+new colony, and perhaps might put it, at least more than he yet
+thought it was, in the way of God's blessing.
+
+I looked a little surprised at the last of his discourse, and
+turning a little short, "How, sir," said I, "can it be said that we
+are not in the way of God's blessing, after such visible
+assistances and deliverances as we have seen here, and of which I
+have given you a large account?" "If you had pleased, sir," said
+he, with a world of modesty, and yet great readiness, "to have
+heard me, you would have found no room to have been displeased,
+much less to think so hard of me, that I should suggest that you
+have not had wonderful assistances and deliverances; and I hope, on
+your behalf, that you are in the way of God's blessing, and your
+design is exceeding good, and will prosper. But, sir, though it
+were more so than is even possible to you, yet there may be some
+among you that are not equally right in their actions: and you
+know that in the story of the children of Israel, one Achan in the
+camp removed God's blessing from them, and turned His hand so
+against them, that six-and-thirty of them, though not concerned in
+the crime, were the objects of divine vengeance, and bore the
+weight of that punishment."
+
+I was sensibly touched with this discourse, and told him his
+inference was so just, and the whole design seemed so sincere, and
+was really so religious in its own nature, that I was very sorry I
+had interrupted him, and begged him to go on; and, in the meantime,
+because it seemed that what we had both to say might take up some
+time, I told him I was going to the Englishmen's plantations, and
+asked him to go with me, and we might discourse of it by the way.
+He told me he would the more willingly wait on me thither, because
+there partly the thing was acted which he desired to speak to me
+about; so we walked on, and I pressed him to be free and plain with
+me in what he had to say.
+
+"Why, then, sir," said he, "be pleased to give me leave to lay down
+a few propositions, as the foundation of what I have to say, that
+we may not differ in the general principles, though we may be of
+some differing opinions in the practice of particulars. First,
+sir, though we differ in some of the doctrinal articles of religion
+(and it is very unhappy it is so, especially in the case before us,
+as I shall show afterwards), yet there are some general principles
+in which we both agree--that there is a God; and that this God
+having given us some stated general rules for our service and
+obedience, we ought not willingly and knowingly to offend Him,
+either by neglecting to do what He has commanded, or by doing what
+He has expressly forbidden. And let our different religions be
+what they will, this general principle is readily owned by us all,
+that the blessing of God does not ordinarily follow presumptuous
+sinning against His command; and every good Christian will be
+affectionately concerned to prevent any that are under his care
+living in a total neglect of God and His commands. It is not your
+men being Protestants, whatever my opinion may be of such, that
+discharges me from being concerned for their souls, and from
+endeavouring, if it lies before me, that they should live in as
+little distance from enmity with their Maker as possible,
+especially if you give me leave to meddle so far in your circuit."
+
+I could not yet imagine what he aimed at, and told him I granted
+all he had said, and thanked him that he would so far concern
+himself for us: and begged he would explain the particulars of
+what he had observed, that like Joshua, to take his own parable, I
+might put away the accursed thing from us.
+
+"Why, then, sir," says he, "I will take the liberty you give me;
+and there are three things, which, if I am right, must stand in the
+way of God's blessing upon your endeavours here, and which I should
+rejoice, for your sake and their own, to see removed. And, sir, I
+promise myself that you will fully agree with me in them all, as
+soon as I name them; especially because I shall convince you, that
+every one of them may, with great ease, and very much to your
+satisfaction, be remedied. First, sir," says he, "you have here
+four Englishmen, who have fetched women from among the savages, and
+have taken them as their wives, and have had many children by them
+all, and yet are not married to them after any stated legal manner,
+as the laws of God and man require. To this, sir, I know, you will
+object that there was no clergyman or priest of any kind to perform
+the ceremony; nor any pen and ink, or paper, to write down a
+contract of marriage, and have it signed between them. And I know
+also, sir, what the Spaniard governor has told you, I mean of the
+agreement that he obliged them to make when they took those women,
+viz. that they should choose them out by consent, and keep
+separately to them; which, by the way, is nothing of a marriage, no
+agreement with the women as wives, but only an agreement among
+themselves, to keep them from quarrelling. But, sir, the essence
+of the sacrament of matrimony" (so he called it, being a Roman)
+"consists not only in the mutual consent of the parties to take one
+another as man and wife, but in the formal and legal obligation
+that there is in the contract to compel the man and woman, at all
+times, to own and acknowledge each other; obliging the man to
+abstain from all other women, to engage in no other contract while
+these subsist; and, on all occasions, as ability allows, to provide
+honestly for them and their children; and to oblige the women to
+the same or like conditions, on their side. Now, sir," says he,
+"these men may, when they please, or when occasion presents,
+abandon these women, disown their children, leave them to perish,
+and take other women, and marry them while these are living;" and
+here he added, with some warmth, "How, sir, is God honoured in this
+unlawful liberty? And how shall a blessing succeed your endeavours
+in this place, however good in themselves, and however sincere in
+your design, while these men, who at present are your subjects,
+under your absolute government and dominion, are allowed by you to
+live in open adultery?"
+
+I confess I was struck with the thing itself, but much more with
+the convincing arguments he supported it with; but I thought to
+have got off my young priest by telling him that all that part was
+done when I was not there: and that they had lived so many years
+with them now, that if it was adultery, it was past remedy; nothing
+could be done in it now.
+
+"Sir," says he, "asking your pardon for such freedom, you are right
+in this, that, it being done in your absence, you could not be
+charged with that part of the crime; but, I beseech you, flatter
+not yourself that you are not, therefore, under an obligation to do
+your utmost now to put an end to it. You should legally and
+effectually marry them; and as, sir, my way of marrying may not be
+easy to reconcile them to, though it will be effectual, even by
+your own laws, so your way may be as well before God, and as valid
+among men. I mean by a written contract signed by both man and
+woman, and by all the witnesses present, which all the laws of
+Europe would decree to be valid."
+
+I was amazed to see so much true piety, and so much sincerity of
+zeal, besides the unusual impartiality in his discourse as to his
+own party or church, and such true warmth for preserving people
+that he had no knowledge of or relation to from transgressing the
+laws of God. But recollecting what he had said of marrying them by
+a written contract, which I knew he would stand to, I returned it
+back upon him, and told him I granted all that he had said to be
+just, and on his part very kind; that I would discourse with the
+men upon the point now, when I came to them; and I knew no reason
+why they should scruple to let him marry them all, which I knew
+well enough would be granted to be as authentic and valid in
+England as if they were married by one of our own clergymen.
+
+I then pressed him to tell me what was the second complaint which
+he had to make, acknowledging that I was very much his debtor for
+the first, and thanking him heartily for it. He told me he would
+use the same freedom and plainness in the second, and hoped I would
+take it as well; and this was, that notwithstanding these English
+subjects of mine, as he called them, had lived with these women
+almost seven years, had taught them to speak English, and even to
+read it, and that they were, as he perceived, women of tolerable
+understanding, and capable of instruction, yet they had not, to
+this hour, taught them anything of the Christian religion--no, not
+so much as to know there was a God, or a worship, or in what manner
+God was to be served, or that their own idolatry, and worshipping
+they knew not whom, was false and absurd. This he said was an
+unaccountable neglect, and what God would certainly call them to
+account for, and perhaps at last take the work out of their hands.
+He spoke this very affectionately and warmly.
+
+"I am persuaded," says he, "had those men lived in the savage
+country whence their wives came, the savages would have taken more
+pains to have brought them to be idolaters, and to worship the
+devil, than any of these men, so far as I can see, have taken with
+them to teach the knowledge of the true God. Now, sir," said he,
+"though I do not acknowledge your religion, or you mine, yet we
+would be glad to see the devil's servants and the subjects of his
+kingdom taught to know religion; and that they might, at least,
+hear of God and a Redeemer, and the resurrection, and of a future
+state--things which we all believe; that they might, at least, be
+so much nearer coming into the bosom of the true Church than they
+are now in the public profession of idolatry and devil-worship."
+
+I could hold no longer: I took him in my arms and embraced him
+eagerly. "How far," said I to him, "have I been from understanding
+the most essential part of a Christian, viz. to love the interest
+of the Christian Church, and the good of other men's souls! I
+scarce have known what belongs to the being a Christian."--"Oh,
+sir! do not say so," replied he; "this thing is not your fault."--
+"No," said I; "but why did I never lay it to heart as well as
+you?"--"It is not too late yet," said he; "be not too forward to
+condemn yourself."--"But what can be done now?" said I: "you see I
+am going away."--"Will you give me leave to talk with these poor
+men about it?"--"Yes, with all my heart," said I: "and oblige them
+to give heed to what you say too."--"As to that," said he, "we must
+leave them to the mercy of Christ; but it is your business to
+assist them, encourage them, and instruct them; and if you give me
+leave, and God His blessing, I do not doubt but the poor ignorant
+souls shall be brought home to the great circle of Christianity, if
+not into the particular faith we all embrace, and that even while
+you stay here." Upon this I said, "I shall not only give you
+leave, but give you a thousand thanks for it."
+
+I now pressed him for the third article in which we were to blame.
+"Why, really," says he, "it is of the same nature. It is about
+your poor savages, who are, as I may say, your conquered subjects.
+It is a maxim, sir, that is or ought to be received among all
+Christians, of what church or pretended church soever, that the
+Christian knowledge ought to be propagated by all possible means
+and on all possible occasions. It is on this principle that our
+Church sends missionaries into Persia, India, and China; and that
+our clergy, even of the superior sort, willingly engage in the most
+hazardous voyages, and the most dangerous residence amongst
+murderers and barbarians, to teach them the knowledge of the true
+God, and to bring them over to embrace the Christian faith. Now,
+sir, you have such an opportunity here to have six or seven and
+thirty poor savages brought over from a state of idolatry to the
+knowledge of God, their Maker and Redeemer, that I wonder how you
+can pass such an occasion of doing good, which is really worth the
+expense of a man's whole life."
+
+I was now struck dumb indeed, and had not one word to say. I had
+here the spirit of true Christian zeal for God and religion before
+me. As for me, I had not so much as entertained a thought of this
+in my heart before, and I believe I should not have thought of it;
+for I looked upon these savages as slaves, and people whom, had we
+not had any work for them to do, we would have used as such, or
+would have been glad to have transported them to any part of the
+world; for our business was to get rid of them, and we would all
+have been satisfied if they had been sent to any country, so they
+had never seen their own. I was confounded at his discourse, and
+knew not what answer to make him.
+
+He looked earnestly at me, seeing my confusion. "Sir," says he, "I
+shall be very sorry if what I have said gives you any offence."--
+"No, no," said I, "I am offended with nobody but myself; but I am
+perfectly confounded, not only to think that I should never take
+any notice of this before, but with reflecting what notice I am
+able to take of it now. You know, sir," said I, "what
+circumstances I am in; I am bound to the East Indies in a ship
+freighted by merchants, and to whom it would be an insufferable
+piece of injustice to detain their ship here, the men lying all
+this while at victuals and wages on the owners' account. It is
+true, I agreed to be allowed twelve days here, and if I stay more,
+I must pay three pounds sterling per diem demurrage; nor can I stay
+upon demurrage above eight days more, and I have been here thirteen
+already; so that I am perfectly unable to engage in this work
+unless I would suffer myself to be left behind here again; in which
+case, if this single ship should miscarry in any part of her
+voyage, I should be just in the same condition that I was left in
+here at first, and from which I have been so wonderfully
+delivered." He owned the case was very hard upon me as to my
+voyage; but laid it home upon my conscience whether the blessing of
+saving thirty-seven souls was not worth venturing all I had in the
+world for. I was not so sensible of that as he was. I replied to
+him thus: "Why, sir, it is a valuable thing, indeed, to be an
+instrument in God's hand to convert thirty-seven heathens to the
+knowledge of Christ: but as you are an ecclesiastic, and are given
+over to the work, so it seems so naturally to fall in the way of
+your profession; how is it, then, that you do not rather offer
+yourself to undertake it than to press me to do it?"
+
+Upon this he faced about just before me, as he walked along, and
+putting me to a full stop, made me a very low bow. "I most
+heartily thank God and you, sir," said he, "for giving me so
+evident a call to so blessed a work; and if you think yourself
+discharged from it, and desire me to undertake it, I will most
+readily do it, and think it a happy reward for all the hazards and
+difficulties of such a broken, disappointed voyage as I have met
+with, that I am dropped at last into so glorious a work."
+
+I discovered a kind of rapture in his face while he spoke this to
+me; his eyes sparkled like fire; his face glowed, and his colour
+came and went; in a word, he was fired with the joy of being
+embarked in such a work. I paused a considerable while before I
+could tell what to say to him; for I was really surprised to find a
+man of such sincerity, and who seemed possessed of a zeal beyond
+the ordinary rate of men. But after I had considered it a while, I
+asked him seriously if he was in earnest, and that he would
+venture, on the single consideration of an attempt to convert those
+poor people, to be locked up in an unplanted island for perhaps his
+life, and at last might not know whether he should be able to do
+them good or not? He turned short upon me, and asked me what I
+called a venture? "Pray, sir," said he, "what do you think I
+consented to go in your ship to the East Indies for?"--"ay," said
+I, "that I know not, unless it was to preach to the Indians."--
+"Doubtless it was," said he; "and do you think, if I can convert
+these thirty-seven men to the faith of Jesus Christ, it is not
+worth my time, though I should never be fetched off the island
+again?--nay, is it not infinitely of more worth to save so many
+souls than my life is, or the life of twenty more of the same
+profession? Yes, sir," says he, "I would give God thanks all my
+days if I could be made the happy instrument of saving the souls of
+those poor men, though I were never to get my foot off this island
+or see my native country any more. But since you will honour me
+with putting me into this work, for which I will pray for you all
+the days of my life, I have one humble petition to you besides."--
+"What is that?" said I.--"Why," says he, "it is, that you will
+leave your man Friday with me, to be my interpreter to them, and to
+assist me; for without some help I cannot speak to them, or they to
+me."
+
+I was sensibly touched at his requesting Friday, because I could
+not think of parting with him, and that for many reasons: he had
+been the companion of my travels; he was not only faithful to me,
+but sincerely affectionate to the last degree; and I had resolved
+to do something considerable for him if he out-lived me, as it was
+probable he would. Then I knew that, as I had bred Friday up to be
+a Protestant, it would quite confound him to bring him to embrace
+another religion; and he would never, while his eyes were open,
+believe that his old master was a heretic, and would be damned; and
+this might in the end ruin the poor fellow's principles, and so
+turn him back again to his first idolatry. However, a sudden
+thought relieved me in this strait, and it was this: I told him I
+could not say that I was willing to part with Friday on any account
+whatever, though a work that to him was of more value than his life
+ought to be of much more value than the keeping or parting with a
+servant. On the other hand, I was persuaded that Friday would by
+no means agree to part with me; and I could not force him to it
+without his consent, without manifest injustice; because I had
+promised I would never send him away, and he had promised and
+engaged that he would never leave me, unless I sent him away.
+
+He seemed very much concerned at it, for he had no rational access
+to these poor people, seeing he did not understand one word of
+their language, nor they one of his. To remove this difficulty, I
+told him Friday's father had learned Spanish, which I found he also
+understood, and he should serve him as an interpreter. So he was
+much better satisfied, and nothing could persuade him but he would
+stay and endeavour to convert them; but Providence gave another
+very happy turn to all this.
+
+I come back now to the first part of his objections. When we came
+to the Englishmen, I sent for them all together, and after some
+account given them of what I had done for them, viz. what necessary
+things I had provided for them, and how they were distributed,
+which they were very sensible of, and very thankful for, I began to
+talk to them of the scandalous life they led, and gave them a full
+account of the notice the clergyman had taken of it; and arguing
+how unchristian and irreligious a life it was, I first asked them
+if they were married men or bachelors? They soon explained their
+condition to me, and showed that two of them were widowers, and the
+other three were single men, or bachelors. I asked them with what
+conscience they could take these women, and call them their wives,
+and have so many children by them, and not be lawfully married to
+them? They all gave me the answer I expected, viz. that there was
+nobody to marry them; that they agreed before the governor to keep
+them as their wives, and to maintain them and own them as their
+wives; and they thought, as things stood with them, they were as
+legally married as if they had been married by a parson and with
+all the formalities in the world.
+
+I told them that no doubt they were married in the sight of God,
+and were bound in conscience to keep them as their wives; but that
+the laws of men being otherwise, they might desert the poor women
+and children hereafter; and that their wives, being poor desolate
+women, friendless and moneyless, would have no way to help
+themselves. I therefore told them that unless I was assured of
+their honest intent, I could do nothing for them, but would take
+care that what I did should be for the women and children without
+them; and that, unless they would give me some assurances that they
+would marry the women, I could not think it was convenient they
+should continue together as man and wife; for that it was both
+scandalous to men and offensive to God, who they could not think
+would bless them if they went on thus.
+
+All this went on as I expected; and they told me, especially Will
+Atkins, who now seemed to speak for the rest, that they loved their
+wives as well as if they had been born in their own native country,
+and would not leave them on any account whatever; and they did
+verily believe that their wives were as virtuous and as modest, and
+did, to the utmost of their skill, as much for them and for their
+children, as any woman could possibly do: and they would not part
+with them on any account. Will Atkins, for his own particular,
+added that if any man would take him away, and offer to carry him
+home to England, and make him captain of the best man-of-war in the
+navy, he would not go with him if he might not carry his wife and
+children with him; and if there was a clergyman in the ship, he
+would be married to her now with all his heart.
+
+This was just as I would have it. The priest was not with me at
+that moment, but he was not far off; so to try him further, I told
+him I had a clergyman with me, and, if he was sincere, I would have
+him married next morning, and bade him consider of it, and talk
+with the rest. He said, as for himself, he need not consider of it
+at all, for he was very ready to do it, and was glad I had a
+minister with me, and he believed they would be all willing also.
+I then told him that my friend, the minister, was a Frenchman, and
+could not speak English, but I would act the clerk between them.
+He never so much as asked me whether he was a Papist or Protestant,
+which was, indeed, what I was afraid of. We then parted, and I
+went back to my clergyman, and Will Atkins went in to talk with his
+companions. I desired the French gentleman not to say anything to
+them till the business was thoroughly ripe; and I told him what
+answer the men had given me.
+
+Before I went from their quarter they all came to me and told me
+they had been considering what I had said; that they were glad to
+hear I had a clergyman in my company, and they were very willing to
+give me the satisfaction I desired, and to be formally married as
+soon as I pleased; for they were far from desiring to part with
+their wives, and that they meant nothing but what was very honest
+when they chose them. So I appointed them to meet me the next
+morning; and, in the meantime, they should let their wives know the
+meaning of the marriage law; and that it was not only to prevent
+any scandal, but also to oblige them that they should not forsake
+them, whatever might happen.
+
+The women were easily made sensible of the meaning of the thing,
+and were very well satisfied with it, as, indeed, they had reason
+to be: so they failed not to attend all together at my apartment
+next morning, where I brought out my clergyman; and though he had
+not on a minister's gown, after the manner of England, or the habit
+of a priest, after the manner of France, yet having a black vest
+something like a cassock, with a sash round it, he did not look
+very unlike a minister; and as for his language, I was his
+interpreter. But the seriousness of his behaviour to them, and the
+scruples he made of marrying the women, because they were not
+baptized and professed Christians, gave them an exceeding reverence
+for his person; and there was no need, after that, to inquire
+whether he was a clergyman or not. Indeed, I was afraid his
+scruples would have been carried so far as that he would not have
+married them at all; nay, notwithstanding all I was able to say to
+him, he resisted me, though modestly, yet very steadily, and at
+last refused absolutely to marry them, unless he had first talked
+with the men and the women too; and though at first I was a little
+backward to it, yet at last I agreed to it with a good will,
+perceiving the sincerity of his design.
+
+When he came to them he let them know that I had acquainted him
+with their circumstances, and with the present design; that he was
+very willing to perform that part of his function, and marry them,
+as I had desired; but that before he could do it, he must take the
+liberty to talk with them. He told them that in the sight of all
+indifferent men, and in the sense of the laws of society, they had
+lived all this while in a state of sin; and that it was true that
+nothing but the consenting to marry, or effectually separating them
+from one another, could now put an end to it; but there was a
+difficulty in it, too, with respect to the laws of Christian
+matrimony, which he was not fully satisfied about, that of marrying
+one that is a professed Christian to a savage, an idolater, and a
+heathen--one that is not baptized; and yet that he did not see that
+there was time left to endeavour to persuade the women to be
+baptized, or to profess the name of Christ, whom they had, he
+doubted, heard nothing of, and without which they could not be
+baptized. He told them he doubted they were but indifferent
+Christians themselves; that they had but little knowledge of God or
+of His ways, and, therefore, he could not expect that they had said
+much to their wives on that head yet; but that unless they would
+promise him to use their endeavours with their wives to persuade
+them to become Christians, and would, as well as they could,
+instruct them in the knowledge and belief of God that made them,
+and to worship Jesus Christ that redeemed them, he could not marry
+them; for he would have no hand in joining Christians with savages,
+nor was it consistent with the principles of the Christian
+religion, and was, indeed, expressly forbidden in God's law.
+
+They heard all this very attentively, and I delivered it very
+faithfully to them from his mouth, as near his own words as I
+could; only sometimes adding something of my own, to convince them
+how just it was, and that I was of his mind; and I always very
+carefully distinguished between what I said from myself and what
+were the clergyman's words. They told me it was very true what the
+gentleman said, that they were very indifferent Christians
+themselves, and that they had never talked to their wives about
+religion. "Lord, sir," says Will Atkins, "how should we teach them
+religion? Why, we know nothing ourselves; and besides, sir," said
+he, "should we talk to them of God and Jesus Christ, and heaven and
+hell, it would make them laugh at us, and ask us what we believe
+ourselves. And if we should tell them that we believe all the
+things we speak of to them, such as of good people going to heaven,
+and wicked people to the devil, they would ask us where we intend
+to go ourselves, that believe all this, and are such wicked fellows
+as we indeed are? Why, sir; 'tis enough to give them a surfeit of
+religion at first hearing; folks must have some religion themselves
+before they begin to teach other people."--"Will Atkins," said I to
+him, "though I am afraid that what you say has too much truth in
+it, yet can you not tell your wife she is in the wrong; that there
+is a God and a religion better than her own; that her gods are
+idols; that they can neither hear nor speak; that there is a great
+Being that made all things, and that can destroy all that He has
+made; that He rewards the good and punishes the bad; and that we
+are to be judged by Him at last for all we do here? You are not so
+ignorant but even nature itself will teach you that all this is
+true; and I am satisfied you know it all to be true, and believe it
+yourself."--"That is true, sir," said Atkins; "but with what face
+can I say anything to my wife of all this, when she will tell me
+immediately it cannot be true?"--"Not true!" said I; "what do you
+mean by that?"--"Why, sir," said he, "she will tell me it cannot be
+true that this God I shall tell her of can be just, or can punish
+or reward, since I am not punished and sent to the devil, that have
+been such a wicked creature as she knows I have been, even to her,
+and to everybody else; and that I should be suffered to live, that
+have been always acting so contrary to what I must tell her is
+good, and to what I ought to have done."--"Why, truly, Atkins,"
+said I, "I am afraid thou speakest too much truth;" and with that I
+informed the clergyman of what Atkins had said, for he was
+impatient to know. "Oh," said the priest, "tell him there is one
+thing will make him the best minister in the world to his wife, and
+that is repentance; for none teach repentance like true penitents.
+He wants nothing but to repent, and then he will be so much the
+better qualified to instruct his wife; he will then be able to tell
+her that there is not only a God, and that He is the just rewarder
+of good and evil, but that He is a merciful Being, and with
+infinite goodness and long-suffering forbears to punish those that
+offend; waiting to be gracious, and willing not the death of a
+sinner, but rather that he should return and live; and even
+reserves damnation to the general day of retribution; that it is a
+clear evidence of God and of a future state that righteous men
+receive not their reward, or wicked men their punishment, till they
+come into another world; and this will lead him to teach his wife
+the doctrine of the resurrection and of the last judgment. Let him
+but repent himself, he will be an excellent preacher of repentance
+to his wife."
+
+I repeated all this to Atkins, who looked very serious all the
+while, and, as we could easily perceive, was more than ordinarily
+affected with it; when being eager, and hardly suffering me to make
+an end, "I know all this, master," says he, "and a great deal more;
+but I have not the impudence to talk thus to my wife, when God and
+my conscience know, and my wife will be an undeniable evidence
+against me, that I have lived as if I had never heard of a God or
+future state, or anything about it; and to talk of my repenting,
+alas!" (and with that he fetched a deep sigh, and I could see that
+the tears stood in his eyes) "'tis past all that with me."--"Past
+it, Atkins?" said I: "what dost thou mean by that?"--"I know well
+enough what I mean," says he; "I mean 'tis too late, and that is
+too true."
+
+I told the clergyman, word for word, what he said, and this
+affectionate man could not refrain from tears; but, recovering
+himself, said to me, "Ask him but one question. Is he easy that it
+is too late; or is he troubled, and wishes it were not so?" I put
+the question fairly to Atkins; and he answered with a great deal of
+passion, "How could any man be easy in a condition that must
+certainly end in eternal destruction? that he was far from being
+easy; but that, on the contrary, he believed it would one time or
+other ruin him."--"What do you mean by that?" said I.--"Why," he
+said, "he believed he should one time or other cut his throat, to
+put an end to the terror of it."
+
+The clergyman shook his head, with great concern in his face, when
+I told him all this; but turning quick to me upon it, says, "If
+that be his case, we may assure him it is not too late; Christ will
+give him repentance. But pray," says he, "explain this to him:
+that as no man is saved but by Christ, and the merit of His passion
+procuring divine mercy for him, how can it be too late for any man
+to receive mercy? Does he think he is able to sin beyond the power
+or reach of divine mercy? Pray tell him there may be a time when
+provoked mercy will no longer strive, and when God may refuse to
+hear, but that it is never too late for men to ask mercy; and we,
+that are Christ's servants, are commanded to preach mercy at all
+times, in the name of Jesus Christ, to all those that sincerely
+repent: so that it is never too late to repent."
+
+I told Atkins all this, and he heard me with great earnestness; but
+it seemed as if he turned off the discourse to the rest, for he
+said to me he would go and have some talk with his wife; so he went
+out a while, and we talked to the rest. I perceived they were all
+stupidly ignorant as to matters of religion, as much as I was when
+I went rambling away from my father; yet there were none of them
+backward to hear what had been said; and all of them seriously
+promised that they would talk with their wives about it, and do
+their endeavours to persuade them to turn Christians.
+
+The clergyman smiled upon me when I reported what answer they gave,
+but said nothing a good while; but at last, shaking his head, "We
+that are Christ's servants," says he, "can go no further than to
+exhort and instruct: and when men comply, submit to the reproof,
+and promise what we ask, 'tis all we can do; we are bound to accept
+their good words; but believe me, sir," said he, "whatever you may
+have known of the life of that man you call Will Atkin's, I believe
+he is the only sincere convert among them: I will not despair of
+the rest; but that man is apparently struck with the sense of his
+past life, and I doubt not, when he comes to talk of religion to
+his wife, he will talk himself effectually into it: for attempting
+to teach others is sometimes the best way of teaching ourselves.
+If that poor Atkins begins but once to talk seriously of Jesus
+Christ to his wife, he will assuredly talk himself into a thorough
+convert, make himself a penitent, and who knows what may follow."
+
+Upon this discourse, however, and their promising, as above, to
+endeavour to persuade their wives to embrace Christianity, he
+married the two other couple; but Will Atkins and his wife were not
+yet come in. After this, my clergyman, waiting a while, was
+curious to know where Atkins was gone, and turning to me, said, "I
+entreat you, sir, let us walk out of your labyrinth here and look;
+I daresay we shall find this poor man somewhere or other talking
+seriously to his wife, and teaching her already something of
+religion." I began to be of the same mind; so we went out
+together, and I carried him a way which none knew but myself, and
+where the trees were so very thick that it was not easy to see
+through the thicket of leaves, and far harder to see in than to see
+out: when, coming to the edge of the wood, I saw Atkins and his
+tawny wife sitting under the shade of a bush, very eager in
+discourse: I stopped short till my clergyman came up to me, and
+then having showed him where they were, we stood and looked very
+steadily at them a good while. We observed him very earnest with
+her, pointing up to the sun, and to every quarter of the heavens,
+and then down to the earth, then out to the sea, then to himself,
+then to her, to the woods, to the trees. "Now," says the
+clergyman, "you see my words are made good, the man preaches to
+her; mark him now, he is telling her that our God has made him,
+her, and the heavens, the earth, the sea, the woods, the trees,
+&c."--"I believe he is," said I. Immediately we perceived Will
+Atkins start upon his feet, fall down on his knees, and lift up
+both his hands. We supposed he said something, but we could not
+hear him; it was too far for that. He did not continue kneeling
+half a minute, but comes and sits down again by his wife, and talks
+to her again; we perceived then the woman very attentive, but
+whether she said anything to him we could not tell. While the poor
+fellow was upon his knees I could see the tears run plentifully
+down my clergyman's cheeks, and I could hardly forbear myself; but
+it was a great affliction to us both that we were not near enough
+to hear anything that passed between them. Well, however, we could
+come no nearer for fear of disturbing them: so we resolved to see
+an end of this piece of still conversation, and it spoke loud
+enough to us without the help of voice. He sat down again, as I
+have said, close by her, and talked again earnestly to her, and two
+or three times we could see him embrace her most passionately;
+another time we saw him take out his handkerchief and wipe her
+eyes, and then kiss her again with a kind of transport very
+unusual; and after several of these things, we saw him on a sudden
+jump up again, and lend her his hand to help her up, when
+immediately leading her by the hand a step or two, they both
+kneeled down together, and continued so about two minutes.
+
+My friend could bear it no longer, but cries out aloud, "St. Paul!
+St. Paul! behold he prayeth." I was afraid Atkins would hear him,
+therefore I entreated him to withhold himself a while, that we
+might see an end of the scene, which to me, I must confess, was the
+most affecting that ever I saw in my life. Well, he strove with
+himself for a while, but was in such raptures to think that the
+poor heathen woman was become a Christian, that he was not able to
+contain himself; he wept several times, then throwing up his hands
+and crossing his breast, said over several things ejaculatory, and
+by the way of giving God thanks for so miraculous a testimony of
+the success of our endeavours. Some he spoke softly, and I could
+not well hear others; some things he said in Latin, some in French;
+then two or three times the tears would interrupt him, that he
+could not speak at all; but I begged that he would contain himself,
+and let us more narrowly and fully observe what was before us,
+which he did for a time, the scene not being near ended yet; for
+after the poor man and his wife were risen again from their knees,
+we observed he stood talking still eagerly to her, and we observed
+her motion, that she was greatly affected with what he said, by her
+frequently lifting up her hands, laying her hand to her breast, and
+such other postures as express the greatest seriousness and
+attention; this continued about half a quarter of an hour, and then
+they walked away, so we could see no more of them in that
+situation.
+
+I took this interval to say to the clergyman, first, that I was
+glad to see the particulars we had both been witnesses to; that,
+though I was hard enough of belief in such cases, yet that I began
+to think it was all very sincere here, both in the man and his
+wife, however ignorant they might both be, and I hoped such a
+beginning would yet have a more happy end. "But, my friend," added
+I, "will you give me leave to start one difficulty here? I cannot
+tell how to object the least thing against that affectionate
+concern which you show for the turning of the poor people from
+their paganism to the Christian religion; but how does this comfort
+you, while these people are, in your account, out of the pale of
+the Catholic Church, without which you believe there is no
+salvation? so that you esteem these but heretics, as effectually
+lost as the pagans themselves."
+
+To this he answered, with abundance of candour, thus: "Sir, I am a
+Catholic of the Roman Church, and a priest of the order of St.
+Benedict, and I embrace all the principles of the Roman faith; but
+yet, if you will believe me, and that I do not speak in compliment
+to you, or in respect to my circumstances and your civilities; I
+say nevertheless, I do not look upon you, who call yourselves
+reformed, without some charity. I dare not say (though I know it
+is our opinion in general) that you cannot be saved; I will by no
+means limit the mercy of Christ so far as think that He cannot
+receive you into the bosom of His Church, in a manner to us
+unperceivable; and I hope you have the same charity for us: I pray
+daily for you being all restored to Christ's Church, by whatsoever
+method He, who is all-wise, is pleased to direct. In the meantime,
+surely you will allow it consists with me as a Roman to distinguish
+far between a Protestant and a pagan; between one that calls on
+Jesus Christ, though in a way which I do not think is according to
+the true faith, and a savage or a barbarian, that knows no God, no
+Christ, no Redeemer; and if you are not within the pale of the
+Catholic Church, we hope you are nearer being restored to it than
+those who know nothing of God or of His Church: and I rejoice,
+therefore, when I see this poor man, who you say has been a
+profligate, and almost a murderer kneel down and pray to Jesus
+Christ, as we suppose he did, though not fully enlightened;
+believing that God, from whom every such work proceeds, will
+sensibly touch his heart, and bring him to the further knowledge of
+that truth in His own time; and if God shall influence this poor
+man to convert and instruct the ignorant savage, his wife, I can
+never believe that he shall be cast away himself. And have I not
+reason, then, to rejoice, the nearer any are brought to the
+knowledge of Christ, though they may not be brought quite home into
+the bosom of the Catholic Church just at the time when I desire it,
+leaving it to the goodness of Christ to perfect His work in His own
+time, and in his own way? Certainly, I would rejoice if all the
+savages in America were brought, like this poor woman, to pray to
+God, though they were all to be Protestants at first, rather than
+they should continue pagans or heathens; firmly believing, that He
+that had bestowed the first light on them would farther illuminate
+them with a beam of His heavenly grace, and bring them into the
+pale of His Church when He should see good."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII--CONVERSATION BETWIXT WILL ATKINS AND HIS WIFE
+
+
+
+I was astonished at the sincerity and temper of this pious Papist,
+as much as I was oppressed by the power of his reasoning; and it
+presently occurred to my thoughts, that if such a temper was
+universal, we might be all Catholic Christians, whatever Church or
+particular profession we joined in; that a spirit of charity would
+soon work us all up into right principles; and as he thought that
+the like charity would make us all Catholics, so I told him I
+believed, had all the members of his Church the like moderation,
+they would soon all be Protestants. And there we left that part;
+for we never disputed at all. However, I talked to him another
+way, and taking him by the hand, "My friend," says I, "I wish all
+the clergy of the Romish Church were blessed with such moderation,
+and had an equal share of your charity. I am entirely of your
+opinion; but I must tell you that if you should preach such
+doctrine in Spain or Italy, they would put you into the
+Inquisition."--"It may be so," said he; "I know not what they would
+do in Spain or Italy; but I will not say they would be the better
+Christians for that severity; for I am sure there is no heresy in
+abounding with charity."
+
+Well, as Will Atkins and his wife were gone, our business there was
+over, so we went back our own way; and when we came back, we found
+them waiting to be called in. Observing this, I asked my clergyman
+if we should discover to him that we had seen him under the bush or
+not; and it was his opinion we should not, but that we should talk
+to him first, and hear what he would say to us; so we called him in
+alone, nobody being in the place but ourselves, and I began by
+asking him some particulars about his parentage and education. He
+told me frankly enough that his father was a clergyman who would
+have taught him well, but that he, Will Atkins, despised all
+instruction and correction; and by his brutish conduct cut the
+thread of all his father's comforts and shortened his days, for
+that he broke his heart by the most ungrateful, unnatural return
+for the most affectionate treatment a father ever gave.
+
+In what he said there seemed so much sincerity of repentance, that
+it painfully affected me. I could not but reflect that I, too, had
+shortened the life of a good, tender father by my bad conduct and
+obstinate self-will. I was, indeed, so surprised with what he had
+told me, that I thought, instead of my going about to teach and
+instruct him, the man was made a teacher and instructor to me in a
+most unexpected manner.
+
+I laid all this before the young clergyman, who was greatly
+affected with it, and said to me, "Did I not say, sir, that when
+this man was converted he would preach to us all? I tell you, sir,
+if this one man be made a true penitent, there will be no need of
+me; he will make Christians of all in the island."--But having a
+little composed myself, I renewed my discourse with Will Atkins.
+"But, Will," said I, "how comes the sense of this matter to touch
+you just now?"
+
+W.A.--Sir, you have set me about a work that has struck a dart
+though my very soul; I have been talking about God and religion to
+my wife, in order, as you directed me, to make a Christian of her,
+and she has preached such a sermon to me as I shall never forget
+while I live.
+
+R.C.--No, no, it is not your wife has preached to you; but when you
+were moving religious arguments to her, conscience has flung them
+back upon you.
+
+W.A.--Ay, sir, with such force as is not to be resisted.
+
+R.C.--Pray, Will, let us know what passed between you and your
+wife; for I know something of it already.
+
+W.A.--Sir, it is impossible to give you a full account of it; I am
+too full to hold it, and yet have no tongue to express it; but let
+her have said what she will, though I cannot give you an account of
+it, this I can tell you, that I have resolved to amend and reform
+my life.
+
+R.C.--But tell us some of it: how did you begin, Will? For this
+has been an extraordinary case, that is certain. She has preached
+a sermon, indeed, if she has wrought this upon you.
+
+W.A.--Why, I first told her the nature of our laws about marriage,
+and what the reasons were that men and women were obliged to enter
+into such compacts as it was neither in the power of one nor other
+to break; that otherwise, order and justice could not be
+maintained, and men would run from their wives, and abandon their
+children, mix confusedly with one another, and neither families be
+kept entire, nor inheritances be settled by legal descent.
+
+R.C.--You talk like a civilian, Will. Could you make her
+understand what you meant by inheritance and families? They know
+no such things among the savages, but marry anyhow, without regard
+to relation, consanguinity, or family; brother and sister, nay, as
+I have been told, even the father and the daughter, and the son and
+the mother.
+
+W.A.--I believe, sir, you are misinformed, and my wife assures me
+of the contrary, and that they abhor it; perhaps, for any further
+relations, they may not be so exact as we are; but she tells me
+never in the near relationship you speak of.
+
+R.C.--Well, what did she say to what you told her?
+
+W.A.--She said she liked it very well, as it was much better than
+in her country.
+
+R.C.--But did you tell her what marriage was?
+
+W.A.--Ay, ay, there began our dialogue. I asked her if she would
+be married to me our way. She asked me what way that was; I told
+her marriage was appointed by God; and here we had a strange talk
+together, indeed, as ever man and wife had, I believe.
+
+N.B.--This dialogue between Will Atkins and his wife, which I took
+down in writing just after he told it me, was as follows:-
+
+Wife.--Appointed by your God!--Why, have you a God in your country?
+
+W.A.--Yes, my dear, God is in every country.
+
+Wife.--No your God in my country; my country have the great old
+Benamuckee God.
+
+W.A.--Child, I am very unfit to show you who God is; God is in
+heaven and made the heaven and the earth, the sea, and all that in
+them is.
+
+Wife.--No makee de earth; no you God makee all earth; no makee my
+country.
+
+[Will Atkins laughed a little at her expression of God not making
+her country.]
+
+Wife.--No laugh; why laugh me? This no ting to laugh.
+
+[He was justly reproved by his wife, for she was more serious than
+he at first.]
+
+W.A.--That's true, indeed; I will not laugh any more, my dear.
+
+Wife.--Why you say you God makee all?
+
+W.A.--Yes, child, our God made the whole world, and you, and me,
+and all things; for He is the only true God, and there is no God
+but Him. He lives for ever in heaven.
+
+Wife.--Why you no tell me long ago?
+
+W.A.--That's true, indeed; but I have been a wicked wretch, and
+have not only forgotten to acquaint thee with anything before, but
+have lived without God in the world myself.
+
+Wife.--What, have you a great God in your country, you no know Him?
+No say O to Him? No do good ting for Him? That no possible.
+
+W.A.--It is true; though, for all that, we live as if there was no
+God in heaven, or that He had no power on earth.
+
+Wife.--But why God let you do so? Why He no makee you good live?
+
+W.A.--It is all our own fault.
+
+Wife.--But you say me He is great, much great, have much great
+power; can makee kill when He will: why He no makee kill when you
+no serve Him? no say O to Him? no be good mans?
+
+W.A.--That is true, He might strike me dead; and I ought to expect
+it, for I have been a wicked wretch, that is true; but God is
+merciful, and does not deal with us as we deserve.
+
+Wife.--But then do you not tell God thankee for that too?
+
+W. A.--No, indeed, I have not thanked God for His mercy, any more
+than I have feared God from His power.
+
+Wife.--Then you God no God; me no think, believe He be such one,
+great much power, strong: no makee kill you, though you make Him
+much angry.
+
+W.A.--What, will my wicked life hinder you from believing in God?
+What a dreadful creature am I! and what a sad truth is it, that the
+horrid lives of Christians hinder the conversion of heathens!
+
+Wife.--How me tink you have great much God up there [she points up
+to heaven], and yet no do well, no do good ting? Can He tell?
+Sure He no tell what you do?
+
+W.A.--Yes, yes, He knows and sees all things; He hears us speak,
+sees what we do, knows what we think though we do not speak.
+
+Wife.--What! He no hear you curse, swear, speak de great damn?
+
+W.A.--Yes, yes, He hears it all.
+
+Wife.--Where be then the much great power strong?
+
+W.A.--He is merciful, that is all we can say for it; and this
+proves Him to be the true God; He is God, and not man, and
+therefore we are not consumed.
+
+[Here Will Atkins told us he was struck with horror to think how he
+could tell his wife so clearly that God sees, and hears, and knows
+the secret thoughts of the heart, and all that we do, and yet that
+he had dared to do all the vile things he had done.]
+
+Wife.--Merciful! What you call dat?
+
+W.A.--He is our Father and Maker, and He pities and spares us.
+
+Wife.--So then He never makee kill, never angry when you do wicked;
+then He no good Himself, or no great able.
+
+W.A.--Yes, yes, my dear, He is infinitely good and infinitely
+great, and able to punish too; and sometimes, to show His justice
+and vengeance, He lets fly His anger to destroy sinners and make
+examples; many are cut off in their sins.
+
+Wife.--But no makee kill you yet; then He tell you, maybe, that He
+no makee you kill: so you makee the bargain with Him, you do bad
+thing, He no be angry at you when He be angry at other mans.
+
+W.A.--No, indeed, my sins are all presumptions upon His goodness;
+and He would be infinitely just if He destroyed me, as He has done
+other men.
+
+Wife.--Well, and yet no kill, no makee you dead: what you say to
+Him for that? You no tell Him thankee for all that too?
+
+W.A.--I am an unthankful, ungrateful dog, that is true.
+
+Wife.--Why He no makee you much good better? you say He makee you.
+
+W.A.--He made me as He made all the world: it is I have deformed
+myself and abused His goodness, and made myself an abominable
+wretch.
+
+Wife.--I wish you makee God know me. I no makee Him angry--I no do
+bad wicked thing.
+
+[Here Will Atkins said his heart sunk within him to hear a poor
+untaught creature desire to be taught to know God, and he such a
+wicked wretch, that he could not say one word to her about God, but
+what the reproach of his own carriage would make most irrational to
+her to believe; nay, that already she had told him that she could
+not believe in God, because he, that was so wicked, was not
+destroyed.]
+
+W.A.--My dear, you mean, you wish I could teach you to know God,
+not God to know you; for He knows you already, and every thought in
+your heart.
+
+Wife.--Why, then, He know what I say to you now: He know me wish
+to know Him. How shall me know who makee me?
+
+W.A.--Poor creature, He must teach thee: I cannot teach thee. I
+will pray to Him to teach thee to know Him, and forgive me, that am
+unworthy to teach thee.
+
+[The poor fellow was in such an agony at her desiring him to make
+her know God, and her wishing to know Him, that he said he fell
+down on his knees before her, and prayed to God to enlighten her
+mind with the saving knowledge of Jesus Christ, and to pardon his
+sins, and accept of his being the unworthy instrument of
+instructing her in the principles of religion: after which he sat
+down by her again, and their dialogue went on. This was the time
+when we saw him kneel down and hold up his hands.]
+
+Wife.--What you put down the knee for? What you hold up the hand
+for? What you say? Who you speak to? What is all that?
+
+W.A.--My dear, I bow my knees in token of my submission to Him that
+made me: I said O to Him, as you call it, and as your old men do
+to their idol Benamuckee; that is, I prayed to Him.
+
+Wife.--What say you O to Him for?
+
+W.A.--I prayed to Him to open your eyes and your understanding,
+that you may know Him, and be accepted by Him.
+
+Wife.--Can He do that too?
+
+W.A.--Yes, He can: He can do all things.
+
+Wife.--But now He hear what you say?
+
+W.A.--Yes, He has bid us pray to Him, and promised to hear us.
+
+Wife.--Bid you pray? When He bid you? How He bid you? What you
+hear Him speak?
+
+W.A.--No, we do not hear Him speak; but He has revealed Himself
+many ways to us.
+
+[Here he was at a great loss to make her understand that God has
+revealed Himself to us by His word, and what His word was; but at
+last he told it to her thus.]
+
+W.A.--God has spoken to some good men in former days, even from
+heaven, by plain words; and God has inspired good men by His
+Spirit; and they have written all His laws down in a book.
+
+Wife.--Me no understand that; where is book?
+
+W.A.--Alas! my poor creature, I have not this book; but I hope I
+shall one time or other get it for you, and help you to read it.
+
+[Here he embraced her with great affection, but with inexpressible
+grief that he had not a Bible.]
+
+Wife.--But how you makee me know that God teachee them to write
+that book?
+
+W.A.--By the same rule that we know Him to be God.
+
+Wife.--What rule? What way you know Him?
+
+W.A.--Because He teaches and commands nothing but what is good,
+righteous, and holy, and tends to make us perfectly good, as well
+as perfectly happy; and because He forbids and commands us to avoid
+all that is wicked, that is evil in itself, or evil in its
+consequence.
+
+Wife.--That me would understand, that me fain see; if He teachee
+all good thing, He makee all good thing, He give all thing, He hear
+me when I say O to Him, as you do just now; He makee me good if I
+wish to be good; He spare me, no makee kill me, when I no be good:
+all this you say He do, yet He be great God; me take, think,
+believe Him to be great God; me say O to Him with you, my dear.
+
+Here the poor man could forbear no longer, but raised her up, made
+her kneel by him, and he prayed to God aloud to instruct her in the
+knowledge of Himself, by His Spirit; and that by some good
+providence, if possible, she might, some time or other, come to
+have a Bible, that she might read the word of God, and be taught by
+it to know Him. This was the time that we saw him lift her up by
+the hand, and saw him kneel down by her, as above.
+
+They had several other discourses, it seems, after this; and
+particularly she made him promise that, since he confessed his own
+life had been a wicked, abominable course of provocations against
+God, that he would reform it, and not make God angry any more, lest
+He should make him dead, as she called it, and then she would be
+left alone, and never be taught to know this God better; and lest
+he should be miserable, as he had told her wicked men would be
+after death.
+
+This was a strange account, and very affecting to us both, but
+particularly to the young clergyman; he was, indeed, wonderfully
+surprised with it, but under the greatest affliction imaginable
+that he could not talk to her, that he could not speak English to
+make her understand him; and as she spoke but very broken English,
+he could not understand her; however, he turned himself to me, and
+told me that he believed that there must be more to do with this
+woman than to marry her. I did not understand him at first; but at
+length he explained himself, viz. that she ought to be baptized. I
+agreed with him in that part readily, and wished it to be done
+presently. "No, no; hold, sir," says he; "though I would have her
+be baptized, by all means, for I must observe that Will Atkins, her
+husband, has indeed brought her, in a wonderful manner, to be
+willing to embrace a religious life, and has given her just ideas
+of the being of a God; of His power, justice, and mercy: yet I
+desire to know of him if he has said anything to her of Jesus
+Christ, and of the salvation of sinners; of the nature of faith in
+Him, and redemption by Him; of the Holy Spirit, the resurrection,
+the last judgment, and the future state."
+
+I called Will Atkins again, and asked him; but the poor fellow fell
+immediately into tears, and told us he had said something to her of
+all those things, but that he was himself so wicked a creature, and
+his own conscience so reproached him with his horrid, ungodly life,
+that he trembled at the apprehensions that her knowledge of him
+should lessen the attention she should give to those things, and
+make her rather contemn religion than receive it; but he was
+assured, he said, that her mind was so disposed to receive due
+impressions of all those things, and that if I would but discourse
+with her, she would make it appear to my satisfaction that my
+labour would not be lost upon her.
+
+Accordingly I called her in, and placing myself as interpreter
+between my religious priest and the woman, I entreated him to begin
+with her; but sure such a sermon was never preached by a Popish
+priest in these latter ages of the world; and as I told him, I
+thought he had all the zeal, all the knowledge, all the sincerity
+of a Christian, without the error of a Roman Catholic; and that I
+took him to be such a clergyman as the Roman bishops were before
+the Church of Rome assumed spiritual sovereignty over the
+consciences of men. In a word, he brought the poor woman to
+embrace the knowledge of Christ, and of redemption by Him, not with
+wonder and astonishment only, as she did the first notions of a
+God, but with joy and faith; with an affection, and a surprising
+degree of understanding, scarce to be imagined, much less to be
+expressed; and, at her own request, she was baptized.
+
+When he was preparing to baptize her, I entreated him that he would
+perform that office with some caution, that the man might not
+perceive he was of the Roman Church, if possible, because of other
+ill consequences which might attend a difference among us in that
+very religion which we were instructing the other in. He told me
+that as he had no consecrated chapel, nor proper things for the
+office, I should see he would do it in a manner that I should not
+know by it that he was a Roman Catholic myself, if I had not known
+it before; and so he did; for saying only some words over to
+himself in Latin, which I could not understand, he poured a whole
+dishful of water upon the woman's head, pronouncing in French, very
+loud, "Mary" (which was the name her husband desired me to give
+her, for I was her godfather), "I baptize thee in the name of the
+Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost;" so that none could
+know anything by it what religion he was of. He gave the
+benediction afterwards in Latin, but either Will Atkins did not
+know but it was French, or else did not take notice of it at that
+time.
+
+As soon as this was over we married them; and after the marriage
+was over, he turned to Will Atkins, and in a very affectionate
+manner exhorted him, not only to persevere in that good disposition
+he was in, but to support the convictions that were upon him by a
+resolution to reform his life: told him it was in vain to say he
+repented if he did not forsake his crimes; represented to him how
+God had honoured him with being the instrument of bringing his wife
+to the knowledge of the Christian religion, and that he should be
+careful he did not dishonour the grace of God; and that if he did,
+he would see the heathen a better Christian than himself; the
+savage converted, and the instrument cast away. He said a great
+many good things to them both; and then, recommending them to God's
+goodness, gave them the benediction again, I repeating everything
+to them in English; and thus ended the ceremony. I think it was
+the most pleasant and agreeable day to me that ever I passed in my
+whole life. But my clergyman had not done yet: his thoughts hung
+continually upon the conversion of the thirty-seven savages, and
+fain be would have stayed upon the island to have undertaken it;
+but I convinced him, first, that his undertaking was impracticable
+in itself; and, secondly, that perhaps I would put it into a way of
+being done in his absence to his satisfaction.
+
+Having thus brought the affairs of the island to a narrow compass,
+I was preparing to go on board the ship, when the young man I had
+taken out of the famished ship's company came to me, and told me he
+understood I had a clergyman with me, and that I had caused the
+Englishmen to be married to the savages; that he had a match too,
+which he desired might be finished before I went, between two
+Christians, which he hoped would not be disagreeable to me.
+
+I knew this must be the young woman who was his mother's servant,
+for there was no other Christian woman on the island: so I began
+to persuade him not to do anything of that kind rashly, or because
+be found himself in this solitary circumstance. I represented to
+him that he had some considerable substance in the world, and good
+friends, as I understood by himself, and the maid also; that the
+maid was not only poor, and a servant, but was unequal to him, she
+being six or seven and twenty years old, and he not above seventeen
+or eighteen; that he might very probably, with my assistance, make
+a remove from this wilderness, and come into his own country again;
+and that then it would be a thousand to one but he would repent his
+choice, and the dislike of that circumstance might be
+disadvantageous to both. I was going to say more, but he
+interrupted me, smiling, and told me, with a great deal of modesty,
+that I mistook in my guesses--that he had nothing of that kind in
+his thoughts; and he was very glad to hear that I had an intent of
+putting them in a way to see their own country again; and nothing
+should have made him think of staying there, but that the voyage I
+was going was so exceeding long and hazardous, and would carry him
+quite out of the reach of all his friends; that he had nothing to
+desire of me but that I would settle him in some little property in
+the island where he was, give him a servant or two, and some few
+necessaries, and he would live here like a planter, waiting the
+good time when, if ever I returned to England, I would redeem him.
+He hoped I would not be unmindful of him when I came to England:
+that he would give me some letters to his friends in London, to let
+them know how good I had been to him, and in what part of the world
+and what circumstances I had left him in: and he promised me that
+whenever I redeemed him, the plantation, and all the improvements
+he had made upon it, let the value be what it would, should be
+wholly mine.
+
+His discourse was very prettily delivered, considering his youth,
+and was the more agreeable to me, because he told me positively the
+match was not for himself. I gave him all possible assurances that
+if I lived to come safe to England, I would deliver his letters,
+and do his business effectually; and that he might depend I should
+never forget the circumstances I had left him in. But still I was
+impatient to know who was the person to be married; upon which he
+told me it was my Jack-of-all-trades and his maid Susan. I was
+most agreeably surprised when he named the match; for, indeed, I
+thought it very suitable. The character of that man I have given
+already; and as for the maid, she was a very honest, modest, sober,
+and religious young woman: had a very good share of sense, was
+agreeable enough in her person, spoke very handsomely and to the
+purpose, always with decency and good manners, and was neither too
+backward to speak when requisite, nor impertinently forward when it
+was not her business; very handy and housewifely, and an excellent
+manager; fit, indeed, to have been governess to the whole island;
+and she knew very well how to behave in every respect.
+
+The match being proposed in this manner, we married them the same
+day; and as I was father at the altar, and gave her away, so I gave
+her a portion; for I appointed her and her husband a handsome large
+space of ground for their plantation; and indeed this match, and
+the proposal the young gentleman made to give him a small property
+in the island, put me upon parcelling it out amongst them, that
+they might not quarrel afterwards about their situation.
+
+This sharing out the land to them I left to Will Atkins, who was
+now grown a sober, grave, managing fellow, perfectly reformed,
+exceedingly pious and religious; and, as far as I may be allowed to
+speak positively in such a case, I verily believe he was a true
+penitent. He divided things so justly, and so much to every one's
+satisfaction, that they only desired one general writing under my
+hand for the whole, which I caused to be drawn up, and signed and
+sealed, setting out the bounds and situation of every man's
+plantation, and testifying that I gave them thereby severally a
+right to the whole possession and inheritance of the respective
+plantations or farms, with their improvements, to them and their
+heirs, reserving all the rest of the island as my own property, and
+a certain rent for every particular plantation after eleven years,
+if I, or any one from me, or in my name, came to demand it,
+producing an attested copy of the same writing. As to the
+government and laws among them, I told them I was not capable of
+giving them better rules than they were able to give themselves;
+only I made them promise me to live in love and good neighbourhood
+with one another; and so I prepared to leave them.
+
+One thing I must not omit, and that is, that being now settled in a
+kind of commonwealth among themselves, and having much business in
+hand, it was odd to have seven-and-thirty Indians live in a nook of
+the island, independent, and, indeed, unemployed; for except the
+providing themselves food, which they had difficulty enough to do
+sometimes, they had no manner of business or property to manage. I
+proposed, therefore, to the governor Spaniard that he should go to
+them, with Friday's father, and propose to them to remove, and
+either plant for themselves, or be taken into their several
+families as servants to be maintained for their labour, but without
+being absolute slaves; for I would not permit them to make them
+slaves by force, by any means; because they had their liberty given
+them by capitulation, as it were articles of surrender, which they
+ought not to break.
+
+They most willingly embraced the proposal, and came all very
+cheerfully along with him: so we allotted them land and
+plantations, which three or four accepted of, but all the rest
+chose to be employed as servants in the several families we had
+settled. Thus my colony was in a manner settled as follows: The
+Spaniards possessed my original habitation, which was the capital
+city, and extended their plantations all along the side of the
+brook, which made the creek that I have so often described, as far
+as my bower; and as they increased their culture, it went always
+eastward. The English lived in the north-east part, where Will
+Atkins and his comrades began, and came on southward and south-
+west, towards the back part of the Spaniards; and every plantation
+had a great addition of land to take in, if they found occasion, so
+that they need not jostle one another for want of room. All the
+east end of the island was left uninhabited, that if any of the
+savages should come on shore there only for their customary
+barbarities, they might come and go; if they disturbed nobody,
+nobody would disturb them: and no doubt but they were often
+ashore, and went away again; for I never heard that the planters
+were ever attacked or disturbed any more.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII--SAILS FROM THE ISLAND FOR THE BRAZILS
+
+
+
+It now came into my thoughts that I had hinted to my friend the
+clergyman that the work of converting the savages might perhaps be
+set on foot in his absence to his satisfaction, and I told him that
+now I thought that it was put in a fair way; for the savages, being
+thus divided among the Christians, if they would but every one of
+them do their part with those which came under their hands, I hoped
+it might have a very good effect.
+
+He agreed presently in that, if they did their part. "But how,"
+says he, "shall we obtain that of them?" I told him we would call
+them all together, and leave it in charge with them, or go to them,
+one by one, which he thought best; so we divided it--he to speak to
+the Spaniards, who were all Papists, and I to speak to the English,
+who were all Protestants; and we recommended it earnestly to them,
+and made them promise that they would never make any distinction of
+Papist or Protestant in their exhorting the savages to turn
+Christians, but teach them the general knowledge of the true God,
+and of their Saviour Jesus Christ; and they likewise promised us
+that they would never have any differences or disputes one with
+another about religion.
+
+When I came to Will Atkins's house, I found that the young woman I
+have mentioned above, and Will Atkins's wife, were become
+intimates; and this prudent, religious young woman had perfected
+the work Will Atkins had begun; and though it was not above four
+days after what I have related, yet the new-baptized savage woman
+was made such a Christian as I have seldom heard of in all my
+observation or conversation in the world. It came next into my
+mind, in the morning before I went to them, that amongst all the
+needful things I had to leave with them I had not left them a
+Bible, in which I showed myself less considering for them than my
+good friend the widow was for me when she sent me the cargo of a
+hundred pounds from Lisbon, where she packed up three Bibles and a
+Prayer-book. However, the good woman's charity had a greater
+extent than ever she imagined, for they were reserved for the
+comfort and instruction of those that made much better use of them
+than I had done.
+
+I took one of the Bibles in my pocket, and when I came to Will
+Atkins's tent, or house, and found the young woman and Atkins's
+baptized wife had been discoursing of religion together--for Will
+Atkins told it me with a great deal of joy--I asked if they were
+together now, and he said, "Yes"; so I went into the house, and he
+with me, and we found them together very earnest in discourse.
+"Oh, sir," says Will Atkins, "when God has sinners to reconcile to
+Himself, and aliens to bring home, He never wants a messenger; my
+wife has got a new instructor: I knew I was unworthy, as I was
+incapable of that work; that young woman has been sent hither from
+heaven--she is enough to convert a whole island of savages." The
+young woman blushed, and rose up to go away, but I desired her to
+sit-still; I told her she had a good work upon her hands, and I
+hoped God would bless her in it.
+
+We talked a little, and I did not perceive that they had any book
+among them, though I did not ask; but I put my hand into my pocket,
+and pulled out my Bible. "Here," said I to Atkins, "I have brought
+you an assistant that perhaps you had not before." The man was so
+confounded that he was not able to speak for some time; but,
+recovering himself, he takes it with both his hands, and turning to
+his wife, "Here, my dear," says he, "did not I tell you our God,
+though He lives above, could hear what we have said? Here's the
+book I prayed for when you and I kneeled down under the bush; now
+God has heard us and sent it." When he had said so, the man fell
+into such passionate transports, that between the joy of having it,
+and giving God thanks for it, the tears ran down his face like a
+child that was crying.
+
+The woman was surprised, and was like to have run into a mistake
+that none of us were aware of; for she firmly believed God had sent
+the book upon her husband's petition. It is true that
+providentially it was so, and might be taken so in a consequent
+sense; but I believe it would have been no difficult matter at that
+time to have persuaded the poor woman to have believed that an
+express messenger came from heaven on purpose to bring that
+individual book. But it was too serious a matter to suffer any
+delusion to take place, so I turned to the young woman, and told
+her we did not desire to impose upon the new convert in her first
+and more ignorant understanding of things, and begged her to
+explain to her that God may be very properly said to answer our
+petitions, when, in the course of His providence, such things are
+in a particular manner brought to pass as we petitioned for; but we
+did not expect returns from heaven in a miraculous and particular
+manner, and it is a mercy that it is not so.
+
+This the young woman did afterwards effectually, so that there was
+no priestcraft used here; and I should have thought it one of the
+most unjustifiable frauds in the world to have had it so. But the
+effect upon Will Atkins is really not to be expressed; and there,
+we may be sure, was no delusion. Sure no man was ever more
+thankful in the world for anything of its kind than he was for the
+Bible, nor, I believe, never any man was glad of a Bible from a
+better principle; and though he had been a most profligate
+creature, headstrong, furious, and desperately wicked, yet this man
+is a standing rule to us all for the well instructing children,
+viz. that parents should never give over to teach and instruct, nor
+ever despair of the success of their endeavours, let the children
+be ever so refractory, or to appearance insensible to instruction;
+for if ever God in His providence touches the conscience of such,
+the force of their education turns upon them, and the early
+instruction of parents is not lost, though it may have been many
+years laid asleep, but some time or other they may find the benefit
+of it. Thus it was with this poor man: however ignorant he was of
+religion and Christian knowledge, he found he had some to do with
+now more ignorant than himself, and that the least part of the
+instruction of his good father that now came to his mind was of use
+to him.
+
+Among the rest, it occurred to him, he said, how his father used to
+insist so much on the inexpressible value of the Bible, and the
+privilege and blessing of it to nations, families, and persons; but
+he never entertained the least notion of the worth of it till now,
+when, being to talk to heathens, savages, and barbarians, he wanted
+the help of the written oracle for his assistance. The young woman
+was glad of it also for the present occasion, though she had one,
+and so had the youth, on board our ship among their goods, which
+were not yet brought on shore. And now, having said so many things
+of this young woman, I cannot omit telling one story more of her
+and myself, which has something in it very instructive and
+remarkable.
+
+I have related to what extremity the poor young woman was reduced;
+how her mistress was starved to death, and died on board that
+unhappy ship we met at sea, and how the whole ship's company was
+reduced to the last extremity. The gentlewoman, and her son, and
+this maid, were first hardly used as to provisions, and at last
+totally neglected and starved--that is to say, brought to the last
+extremity of hunger. One day, being discoursing with her on the
+extremities they suffered, I asked her if she could describe, by
+what she had felt, what it was to starve, and how it appeared? She
+said she believed she could, and told her tale very distinctly
+thus:-
+
+"First, we had for some days fared exceedingly hard, and suffered
+very great hunger; but at last we were wholly without food of any
+kind except sugar, and a little wine and water. The first day
+after I had received no food at all, I found myself towards
+evening, empty and sick at the stomach, and nearer night much
+inclined to yawning and sleep. I lay down on the couch in the
+great cabin to sleep, and slept about three hours, and awaked a
+little refreshed, having taken a glass of wine when I lay down;
+after being about three hours awake, it being about five o'clock in
+the morning, I found myself empty, and my stomach sickish, and lay
+down again, but could not sleep at all, being very faint and ill;
+and thus I continued all the second day with a strange variety--
+first hungry, then sick again, with retchings to vomit. The second
+night, being obliged to go to bed again without any food more than
+a draught of fresh water, and being asleep, I dreamed I was at
+Barbadoes, and that the market was mightily stocked with
+provisions; that I bought some for my mistress, and went and dined
+very heartily. I thought my stomach was full after this, as it
+would have been after a good dinner; but when I awaked I was
+exceedingly sunk in my spirits to find myself in the extremity of
+family. The last glass of wine we had I drank, and put sugar in
+it, because of its having some spirit to supply nourishment; but
+there being no substance in the stomach for the digesting office to
+work upon, I found the only effect of the wine was to raise
+disagreeable fumes from the stomach into the head; and I lay, as
+they told me, stupid and senseless, as one drunk, for some time.
+The third day, in the morning, after a night of strange, confused,
+and inconsistent dreams, and rather dozing than sleeping, I awaked
+ravenous and furious with hunger; and I question, had not my
+understanding returned and conquered it, whether if I had been a
+mother, and had had a little child with me, its life would have
+been safe or not. This lasted about three hours, during which time
+I was twice raging mad as any creature in Bedlam, as my young
+master told me, and as he can now inform you.
+
+"In one of these fits of lunacy or distraction I fell down and
+struck my face against the corner of a pallet-bed, in which my
+mistress lay, and with the blow the blood gushed out of my nose;
+and the cabin-boy bringing me a little basin, I sat down and bled
+into it a great deal; and as the blood came from me I came to
+myself, and the violence of the flame or fever I was in abated, and
+so did the ravenous part of the hunger. Then I grew sick, and
+retched to vomit, but could not, for I had nothing in my stomach to
+bring up. After I had bled some time I swooned, and they all
+believed I was dead; but I came to myself soon after, and then had
+a most dreadful pain in my stomach not to be described--not like
+the colic, but a gnawing, eager pain for food; and towards night it
+went off with a kind of earnest wishing or longing for food. I
+took another draught of water with sugar in it; but my stomach
+loathed the sugar and brought it all up again; then I took a
+draught of water without sugar, and that stayed with me; and I laid
+me down upon the bed, praying most heartily that it would please
+God to take me away; and composing my mind in hopes of it, I
+slumbered a while, and then waking, thought myself dying, being
+light with vapours from an empty stomach. I recommended my soul
+then to God, and then earnestly wished that somebody would throw me
+into the into the sea.
+
+"All this while my mistress lay by me, just, as I thought,
+expiring, but she bore it with much more patience than I, and gave
+the last bit of bread she had left to her child, my young master,
+who would not have taken it, but she obliged him to eat it; and I
+believe it saved his life. Towards the morning I slept again, and
+when I awoke I fell into a violent passion of crying, and after
+that had a second fit of violent hunger. I got up ravenous, and in
+a most dreadful condition; and once or twice I was going to bite my
+own arm. At last I saw the basin in which was the blood I had bled
+at my nose the day before: I ran to it, and swallowed it with such
+haste, and such a greedy appetite, as if I wondered nobody had
+taken it before, and afraid it should be taken from me now. After
+it was down, though the thoughts of it filled me with horror, yet
+it checked the fit of hunger, and I took another draught of water,
+and was composed and refreshed for some hours after. This was the
+fourth day; and this I kept up till towards night, when, within the
+compass of three hours, I had all the several circumstances over
+again, one after another, viz. sick, sleepy, eagerly hungry, pain
+in the stomach, then ravenous again, then sick, then lunatic, then
+crying, then ravenous again, and so every quarter of an hour, and
+my strength wasted exceedingly; at night I lay me down, having no
+comfort but in the hope that I should die before morning.
+
+"All this night I had no sleep; but the hunger was now turned into
+a disease; and I had a terrible colic and griping, by wind instead
+of food having found its way into the bowels; and in this condition
+I lay till morning, when I was surprised by the cries and
+lamentations of my young master, who called out to me that his
+mother was dead. I lifted myself up a little, for I had not
+strength to rise, but found she was not dead, though she was able
+to give very little signs of life. I had then such convulsions in
+my stomach, for want of some sustenance, as I cannot describe; with
+such frequent throes and pangs of appetite as nothing but the
+tortures of death can imitate; and in this condition I was when I
+heard the seamen above cry out, 'A sail! a sail!' and halloo and
+jump about as if they were distracted. I was not able to get off
+from the bed, and my mistress much less; and my young master was so
+sick that I thought he had been expiring; so we could not open the
+cabin door, or get any account what it was that occasioned such
+confusion; nor had we had any conversation with the ship's company
+for twelve days, they having told us that they had not a mouthful
+of anything to eat in the ship; and this they told us afterwards--
+they thought we had been dead. It was this dreadful condition we
+were in when you were sent to save our lives; and how you found us,
+sir, you know as well as I, and better too."
+
+This was her own relation, and is such a distinct account of
+starving to death, as, I confess, I never met with, and was
+exceeding instructive to me. I am the rather apt to believe it to
+be a true account, because the youth gave me an account of a good
+part of it; though I must own, not so distinct and so feeling as
+the maid; and the rather, because it seems his mother fed him at
+the price of her own life: but the poor maid, whose constitution
+was stronger than that of her mistress, who was in years, and a
+weakly woman too, might struggle harder with it; nevertheless she
+might be supposed to feel the extremity something sooner than her
+mistress, who might be allowed to keep the last bit something
+longer than she parted with any to relieve her maid. No question,
+as the case is here related, if our ship or some other had not so
+providentially met them, but a few days more would have ended all
+their lives. I now return to my disposition of things among the
+people. And, first, it is to be observed here, that for many
+reasons I did not think fit to let them know anything of the sloop
+I had framed, and which I thought of setting up among them; for I
+found, at least at my first coming, such seeds of division among
+them, that I saw plainly, had I set up the sloop, and left it among
+them, they would, upon every light disgust, have separated, and
+gone away from one another; or perhaps have turned pirates, and so
+made the island a den of thieves, instead of a plantation of sober
+and religious people, as I intended it; nor did I leave the two
+pieces of brass cannon that I had on board, or the extra two
+quarter-deck guns that my nephew had provided, for the same reason.
+I thought it was enough to qualify them for a defensive war against
+any that should invade them, but not to set them up for an
+offensive war, or to go abroad to attack others; which, in the end,
+would only bring ruin and destruction upon them. I reserved the
+sloop, therefore, and the guns, for their service another way, as I
+shall observe in its place.
+
+Having now done with the island, I left them all in good
+circumstances and in a flourishing condition, and went on board my
+ship again on the 6th of May, having been about twenty-five days
+among them: and as they were all resolved to stay upon the island
+till I came to remove them, I promised to send them further relief
+from the Brazils, if I could possibly find an opportunity. I
+particularly promised to send them some cattle, such as sheep,
+hogs, and cows: as to the two cows and calves which I brought from
+England, we had been obliged, by the length of our voyage, to kill
+them at sea, for want of hay to feed them.
+
+The next day, giving them a salute of five guns at parting, we set
+sail, and arrived at the bay of All Saints in the Brazils in about
+twenty-two days, meeting nothing remarkable in our passage but
+this: that about three days after we had sailed, being becalmed,
+and the current setting strong to the ENE., running, as it were,
+into a bay or gulf on the land side, we were driven something out
+of our course, and once or twice our men cried out, "Land to the
+eastward!" but whether it was the continent or islands we could not
+tell by any means. But the third day, towards evening, the sea
+smooth, and the weather calm, we saw the sea as it were covered
+towards the land with something very black; not being able to
+discover what it was till after some time, our chief mate, going up
+the main shrouds a little way, and looking at them with a
+perspective, cried out it was an army. I could not imagine what he
+meant by an army, and thwarted him a little hastily. "Nay, sir,"
+says he, "don't be angry, for 'tis an army, and a fleet too: for I
+believe there are a thousand canoes, and you may see them paddle
+along, for they are coming towards us apace."
+
+I was a little surprised then, indeed, and so was my nephew the
+captain; for he had heard such terrible stories of them in the
+island, and having never been in those seas before, that he could
+not tell what to think of it, but said, two or three times, we
+should all be devoured. I must confess, considering we were
+becalmed, and the current set strong towards the shore, I liked it
+the worse; however, I bade them not be afraid, but bring the ship
+to an anchor as soon as we came so near as to know that we must
+engage them. The weather continued calm, and they came on apace
+towards us, so I gave orders to come to an anchor, and furl all our
+sails; as for the savages, I told them they had nothing to fear but
+fire, and therefore they should get their boats out, and fasten
+them, one close by the head and the other by the stern, and man
+them both well, and wait the issue in that posture: this I did,
+that the men in the boats might he ready with sheets and buckets to
+put out any fire these savages might endeavour to fix to the
+outside of the ship.
+
+In this posture we lay by for them, and in a little while they came
+up with us; but never was such a horrid sight seen by Christians;
+though my mate was much mistaken in his calculation of their
+number, yet when they came up we reckoned about a hundred and
+twenty-six canoes; some of them had sixteen or seventeen men in
+them, and some more, and the least six or seven. When they came
+nearer to us, they seemed to be struck with wonder and
+astonishment, as at a sight which doubtless they had never seen
+before; nor could they at first, as we afterwards understood, know
+what to make of us; they came boldly up, however, very near to us,
+and seemed to go about to row round us; but we called to our men in
+the boats not to let them come too near them. This very order
+brought us to an engagement with them, without our designing it;
+for five or six of the large canoes came so near our long-boat,
+that our men beckoned with their hands to keep them back, which
+they understood very well, and went back: but at their retreat
+about fifty arrows came on board us from those boats, and one of
+our men in the long-boat was very much wounded. However, I called
+to them not to fire by any means; but we handed down some deal
+boards into the boat, and the carpenter presently set up a kind of
+fence, like waste boards, to cover them from the arrows of the
+savages, if they should shoot again.
+
+About half-an-hour afterwards they all came up in a body astern of
+us, and so near that we could easily discern what they were, though
+we could not tell their design; and I easily found they were some
+of my old friends, the same sort of savages that I had been used to
+engage with. In a short time more they rowed a little farther out
+to sea, till they came directly broadside with us, and then rowed
+down straight upon us, till they came so near that they could hear
+us speak; upon this, I ordered all my men to keep close, lest they
+should shoot any more arrows, and made all our guns ready; but
+being so near as to be within hearing, I made Friday go out upon
+the deck, and call out aloud to them in his language, to know what
+they meant. Whether they understood him or not, that I knew not;
+but as soon as he had called to them, six of them, who were in the
+foremost or nighest boat to us, turned their canoes from us, and
+stooping down, showed us their naked backs; whether this was a
+defiance or challenge we knew not, or whether it was done in mere
+contempt, or as a signal to the rest; but immediately Friday cried
+out they were going to shoot, and, unhappily for him, poor fellow,
+they let fly about three hundred of their arrows, and to my
+inexpressible grief, killed poor Friday, no other man being in
+their sight. The poor fellow was shot with no less than three
+arrows, and about three more fell very near him; such unlucky
+marksmen they were!
+
+I was so annoyed at the loss of my old trusty servant and
+companion, that I immediately ordered five guns to be loaded with
+small shot, and four with great, and gave them such a broadside as
+they had never heard in their lives before. They were not above
+half a cable's length off when we fired; and our gunners took their
+aim so well, that three or four of their canoes were overset, as we
+had reason to believe, by one shot only. The ill manners of
+turning up their bare backs to us gave us no great offence; neither
+did I know for certain whether that which would pass for the
+greatest contempt among us might be understood so by them or not;
+therefore, in return, I had only resolved to have fired four or
+five guns at them with powder only, which I knew would frighten
+them sufficiently: but when they shot at us directly with all the
+fury they were capable of, and especially as they had killed my
+poor Friday, whom I so entirely loved and valued, and who, indeed,
+so well deserved it, I thought myself not only justifiable before
+God and man, but would have been very glad if I could have overset
+every canoe there, and drowned every one of them.
+
+I can neither tell how many we killed nor how many we wounded at
+this broadside, but sure such a fright and hurry never were seen
+among such a multitude; there were thirteen or fourteen of their
+canoes split and overset in all, and the men all set a-swimming:
+the rest, frightened out of their wits, scoured away as fast as
+they could, taking but little care to save those whose boats were
+split or spoiled with our shot; so I suppose that many of them were
+lost; and our men took up one poor fellow swimming for his life,
+above an hour after they were all gone. The small shot from our
+cannon must needs kill and wound a great many; but, in short, we
+never knew how it went with them, for they fled so fast, that in
+three hours or thereabouts we could not see above three or four
+straggling canoes, nor did we ever see the rest any more; for a
+breeze of wind springing up the same evening, we weighed and set
+sail for the Brazils.
+
+We had a prisoner, indeed, but the creature was so sullen that he
+would neither eat nor speak, and we all fancied he would starve
+himself to death. But I took a way to cure him: for I had made
+them take him and turn him into the long-boat, and make him believe
+they would toss him into the sea again, and so leave him where they
+found him, if he would not speak; nor would that do, but they
+really did throw him into the sea, and came away from him. Then he
+followed them, for he swam like a cork, and called to them in his
+tongue, though they knew not one word of what he said; however at
+last they took him in again., and then he began to he more
+tractable: nor did I ever design they should drown him.
+
+We were now under sail again, but I was the most disconsolate
+creature alive for want of my man Friday, and would have been very
+glad to have gone back to the island, to have taken one of the rest
+from thence for my occasion, but it could not be: so we went on.
+We had one prisoner, as I have said, and it was a long time before
+we could make him understand anything; but in time our men taught
+him some English, and he began to be a little tractable.
+Afterwards, we inquired what country he came from; but could make
+nothing of what he said; for his speech was so odd, all gutturals,
+and he spoke in the throat in such a hollow, odd manner, that we
+could never form a word after him; and we were all of opinion that
+they might speak that language as well if they were gagged as
+otherwise; nor could we perceive that they had any occasion either
+for teeth, tongue, lips, or palate, but formed their words just as
+a hunting-horn forms a tune with an open throat. He told us,
+however, some time after, when we had taught him to speak a little
+English, that they were going with their kings to fight a great
+battle. When he said kings, we asked him how many kings? He said
+they were five nation (we could not make him understand the plural
+'s), and that they all joined to go against two nation. We asked
+him what made them come up to us? He said, "To makee te great
+wonder look." Here it is to be observed that all those natives, as
+also those of Africa when they learn English, always add two e's at
+the end of the words where we use one; and they place the accent
+upon them, as makee, takee, and the like; nay, I could hardly make
+Friday leave it off, though at last he did.
+
+And now I name the poor fellow once more, I must take my last leave
+of him. Poor honest Friday! We buried him with all the decency
+and solemnity possible, by putting him into a coffin, and throwing
+him into the sea; and I caused them to fire eleven guns for him.
+So ended the life of the most grateful, faithful, honest, and most
+affectionate servant that ever man had.
+
+We went now away with a fair wind for Brazil; and in about twelve
+days' time we made land, in the latitude of five degrees south of
+the line, being the north-easternmost land of all that part of
+America. We kept on S. by E., in sight of the shore four days,
+when we made Cape St. Augustine, and in three days came to an
+anchor off the bay of All Saints, the old place of my deliverance,
+from whence came both my good and evil fate. Never ship came to
+this port that had less business than I had, and yet it was with
+great difficulty that we were admitted to hold the least
+correspondence on shore: not my partner himself, who was alive,
+and made a great figure among them, not my two merchant-trustees,
+not the fame of my wonderful preservation in the island, could
+obtain me that favour. My partner, however, remembering that I had
+given five hundred moidores to the prior of the monastery of the
+Augustines, and two hundred and seventy-two to the poor, went to
+the monastery, and obliged the prior that then was to go to the
+governor, and get leave for me personally, with the captain and one
+more, besides eight seamen, to come on shore, and no more; and this
+upon condition, absolutely capitulated for, that we should not
+offer to land any goods out of the ship, or to carry any person
+away without licence. They were so strict with us as to landing
+any goods, that it was with extreme difficulty that I got on shore
+three bales of English goods, such as fine broadcloths, stuffs, and
+some linen, which I had brought for a present to my partner.
+
+He was a very generous, open-hearted man, although he began, like
+me, with little at first. Though he knew not that I had the least
+design of giving him anything, he sent me on board a present of
+fresh provisions, wine, and sweetmeats, worth about thirty
+moidores, including some tobacco, and three or four fine medals of
+gold: but I was even with him in my present, which, as I have
+said, consisted of fine broadcloth, English stuffs, lace, and fine
+holland; also, I delivered him about the value of one hundred
+pounds sterling in the same goods, for other uses; and I obliged
+him to set up the sloop, which I had brought with me from England,
+as I have said, for the use of my colony, in order to send the
+refreshments I intended to my plantation.
+
+Accordingly, he got hands, and finished the sloop in a very few
+days, for she was already framed; and I gave the master of her such
+instructions that he could not miss the place; nor did he, as I had
+an account from my partner afterwards. I got him soon loaded with
+the small cargo I sent them; and one of our seamen, that had been
+on shore with me there, offered to go with the sloop and settle
+there, upon my letter to the governor Spaniard to allot him a
+sufficient quantity of land for a plantation, and on my giving him
+some clothes and tools for his planting work, which he said he
+understood, having been an old planter at Maryland, and a buccaneer
+into the bargain. I encouraged the fellow by granting all he
+desired; and, as an addition, I gave him the savage whom we had
+taken prisoner of war to be his slave, and ordered the governor
+Spaniard to give him his share of everything he wanted with the
+rest.
+
+When we came to fit this man out, my old partner told me there was
+a certain very honest fellow, a Brazil planter of his acquaintance,
+who had fallen into the displeasure of the Church. "I know not
+what the matter is with him," says he, "but, on my conscience, I
+think he is a heretic in his heart, and he has been obliged to
+conceal himself for fear of the Inquisition." He then told me that
+he would be very glad of such an opportunity to make his escape,
+with his wife and two daughters; and if I would let them go to my
+island, and allot them a plantation, he would give them a small
+stock to begin with--for the officers of the Inquisition had seized
+all his effects and estate, and he had nothing left but a little
+household stuff and two slaves; "and," adds he, "though I hate his
+principles, yet I would not have him fall into their hands, for he
+will be assuredly burned alive if he does." I granted this
+presently, and joined my Englishman with them: and we concealed
+the man, and his wife and daughters, on board our ship, till the
+sloop put out to go to sea; and then having put all their goods on
+board some time before, we put them on board the sloop after she
+was got out of the bay. Our seaman was mightily pleased with this
+new partner; and their stocks, indeed, were much alike, rich in
+tools, in preparations, and a farm--but nothing to begin with,
+except as above: however, they carried over with them what was
+worth all the rest, some materials for planting sugar-canes, with
+some plants of canes, which he, I mean the Brazil planter,
+understood very well.
+
+Among the rest of the supplies sent to my tenants in the island, I
+sent them by the sloop three milch cows and five calves; about
+twenty-two hogs, among them three sows; two mares, and a stone-
+horse. For my Spaniards, according to my promise, I engaged three
+Brazil women to go, and recommended it to them to marry them, and
+use them kindly. I could have procured more women, but I
+remembered that the poor persecuted man had two daughters, and that
+there were but five of the Spaniards that wanted partners; the rest
+had wives of their own, though in another country. All this cargo
+arrived safe, and, as you may easily suppose, was very welcome to
+my old inhabitants, who were now, with this addition, between sixty
+and seventy people, besides little children, of which there were a
+great many. I found letters at London from them all, by way of
+Lisbon, when I came back to England.
+
+I have now done with the island, and all manner of discourse about
+it: and whoever reads the rest of my memorandums would do well to
+turn his thoughts entirely from it, and expect to read of the
+follies of an old man, not warned by his own harms, much less by
+those of other men, to beware; not cooled by almost forty years'
+miseries and disappointments--not satisfied with prosperity beyond
+expectation, nor made cautious by afflictions and distress beyond
+example.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX-- DREADFUL OCCURRENCES IN MADAGASCAR
+
+
+
+I had no more business to go to the East Indies than a man at full
+liberty has to go to the turnkey at Newgate, and desire him to lock
+him up among the prisoners there, and starve him. Had I taken a
+small vessel from England and gone directly to the island; had I
+loaded her, as I did the other vessel, with all the necessaries for
+the plantation and for my people; taken a patent from the
+government here to have secured my property, in subjection only to
+that of England; had I carried over cannon and ammunition, servants
+and people to plant, and taken possession of the place, fortified
+and strengthened it in the name of England, and increased it with
+people, as I might easily have done; had I then settled myself
+there, and sent the ship back laden with good rice, as I might also
+have done in six months' time, and ordered my friends to have
+fitted her out again for our supply--had I done this, and stayed
+there myself, I had at least acted like a man of common sense. But
+I was possessed of a wandering spirit, and scorned all advantages:
+I pleased myself with being the patron of the people I placed
+there, and doing for them in a kind of haughty, majestic way, like
+an old patriarchal monarch, providing for them as if I had been
+father of the whole family, as well as of the plantation. But I
+never so much as pretended to plant in the name of any government
+or nation, or to acknowledge any prince, or to call my people
+subjects to any one nation more than another; nay, I never so much
+as gave the place a name, but left it as I found it, belonging to
+nobody, and the people under no discipline or government but my
+own, who, though I had influence over them as a father and
+benefactor, had no authority or power to act or command one way or
+other, further than voluntary consent moved them to comply. Yet
+even this, had I stayed there, would have done well enough; but as
+I rambled from them, and came there no more, the last letters I had
+from any of them were by my partner's means, who afterwards sent
+another sloop to the place, and who sent me word, though I had not
+the letter till I got to London, several years after it was
+written, that they went on but poorly; were discontented with their
+long stay there; that Will Atkins was dead; that five of the
+Spaniards were come away; and though they had not been much
+molested by the savages, yet they had had some skirmishes with
+them; and that they begged of him to write to me to think of the
+promise I had made to fetch them away, that they might see their
+country again before they died.
+
+But I was gone a wildgoose chase indeed, and they that will have
+any more of me must be content to follow me into a new variety of
+follies, hardships, and wild adventures, wherein the justice of
+Providence may be duly observed; and we may see how easily Heaven
+can gorge us with our own desires, make the strongest of our wishes
+be our affliction, and punish us most severely with those very
+things which we think it would be our utmost happiness to be
+allowed to possess. Whether I had business or no business, away I
+went: it is no time now to enlarge upon the reason or absurdity of
+my own conduct, but to come to the history--I was embarked for the
+voyage, and the voyage I went.
+
+I shall only add a word or two concerning my honest Popish
+clergyman, for let their opinion of us, and all other heretics in
+general, as they call us, be as uncharitable as it may, I verily
+believe this man was very sincere, and wished the good of all men:
+yet I believe he used reserve in many of his expressions, to
+prevent giving me offence; for I scarce heard him once call on the
+Blessed Virgin, or mention St. Jago, or his guardian angel, though
+so common with the rest of them. However, I say I had not the
+least doubt of his sincerity and pious intentions; and I am firmly
+of opinion, if the rest of the Popish missionaries were like him,
+they would strive to visit even the poor Tartars and Laplanders,
+where they have nothing to give them, as well as covet to flock to
+India, Persia, China, &c., the most wealthy of the heathen
+countries; for if they expected to bring no gains to their Church
+by it, it may well be admired how they came to admit the Chinese
+Confucius into the calendar of the Christian saints.
+
+A ship being ready to sail for Lisbon, my pious priest asked me
+leave to go thither; being still, as he observed, bound never to
+finish any voyage he began. How happy it had been for me if I had
+gone with him. But it was too late now; all things Heaven appoints
+for the best: had I gone with him I had never had so many things
+to be thankful for, and the reader had never heard of the second
+part of the travels and adventures of Robinson Crusoe: so I must
+here leave exclaiming at myself, and go on with my voyage. From
+the Brazils we made directly over the Atlantic Sea to the Cape of
+Good Hope, and had a tolerably good voyage, our course generally
+south-east, now and then a storm, and some contrary winds; but my
+disasters at sea were at an end--my future rubs and cross events
+were to befall me on shore, that it might appear the land was as
+well prepared to be our scourge as the sea.
+
+Our ship was on a trading voyage, and had a supercargo on board,
+who was to direct all her motions after she arrived at the Cape,
+only being limited to a certain number of days for stay, by
+charter-party, at the several ports she was to go to. This was
+none of my business, neither did I meddle with it; my nephew, the
+captain, and the supercargo adjusting all those things between them
+as they thought fit. We stayed at the Cape no longer than was
+needful to take in-fresh water, but made the best of our way for
+the coast of Coromandel. We were, indeed, informed that a French
+man-of-war, of fifty guns, and two large merchant ships, were gone
+for the Indies; and as I knew we were at war with France, I had
+some apprehensions of them; but they went their own way, and we
+heard no more of them.
+
+I shall not pester the reader with a tedious description of places,
+journals of our voyage, variations of the compass, latitudes,
+trade-winds, &c.; it is enough to name the ports and places which
+we touched at, and what occurred to us upon our passages from one
+to another. We touched first at the island of Madagascar, where,
+though the people are fierce and treacherous, and very well armed
+with lances and bows, which they use with inconceivable dexterity,
+yet we fared very well with them a while. They treated us very
+civilly; and for some trifles which we gave them, such as knives,
+scissors, &c., they brought us eleven good fat bullocks, of a
+middling size, which we took in, partly for fresh provisions for
+our present spending, and the rest to salt for the ship's use.
+
+We were obliged to stay here some time after we had furnished
+ourselves with provisions; and I, who was always too curious to
+look into every nook of the world wherever I came, went on shore as
+often as I could. It was on the east side of the island that we
+went on shore one evening: and the people, who, by the way, are
+very numerous, came thronging about us, and stood gazing at us at a
+distance. As we had traded freely with them, and had been kindly
+used, we thought ourselves in no danger; but when we saw the
+people, we cut three boughs out of a tree, and stuck them up at a
+distance from us; which, it seems, is a mark in that country not
+only of a truce and friendship, but when it is accepted the other
+side set up three poles or boughs, which is a signal that they
+accept the truce too; but then this is a known condition of the
+truce, that you are not to pass beyond their three poles towards
+them, nor they to come past your three poles or boughs towards you;
+so that you are perfectly secure within the three poles, and all
+the space between your poles and theirs is allowed like a market
+for free converse, traffic, and commerce. When you go there you
+must not carry your weapons with you; and if they come into that
+space they stick up their javelins and lances all at the first
+poles, and come on unarmed; but if any violence is offered them,
+and the truce thereby broken, away they run to the poles, and lay
+hold of their weapons, and the truce is at an end.
+
+It happened one evening, when we went on shore, that a greater
+number of their people came down than usual, but all very friendly
+and civil; and they brought several kinds of provisions, for which
+we satisfied them with such toys as we had; the women also brought
+us milk and roots, and several things very acceptable to us, and
+all was quiet; and we made us a little tent or hut of some boughs
+or trees, and lay on shore all night. I know not what was the
+occasion, but I was not so well satisfied to lie on shore as the
+rest; and the boat riding at an anchor at about a stone's cast from
+the land, with two men in her to take care of her, I made one of
+them come on shore; and getting some boughs of trees to cover us
+also in the boat, I spread the sail on the bottom of the boat, and
+lay under the cover of the branches of the trees all night in the
+boat.
+
+About two o'clock in the morning we heard one of our men making a
+terrible noise on the shore, calling out, for God's sake, to bring
+the boat in and come and help them, for they were all like to be
+murdered; and at the same time I heard the fire of five muskets,
+which was the number of guns they had, and that three times over;
+for it seems the natives here were not so easily frightened with
+guns as the savages were in America, where I had to do with them.
+All this while, I knew not what was the matter, but rousing
+immediately from sleep with the noise, I caused the boat to be
+thrust in, and resolved with three fusees we had on board to land
+and assist our men. We got the boat soon to the shore, but our men
+were in too much haste; for being come to the shore, they plunged
+into the water, to get to the boat with all the expedition they
+could, being pursued by between three and four hundred men. Our
+men were but nine in all, and only five of them had fusees with
+them; the rest had pistols and swords, indeed, but they were of
+small use to them.
+
+We took up seven of our men, and with difficulty enough too, three
+of them being very ill wounded; and that which was still worse was,
+that while we stood in the boat to take our men in, we were in as
+much danger as they were in on shore; for they poured their arrows
+in upon us so thick that we were glad to barricade the side of the
+boat up with the benches, and two or three loose boards which, to
+our great satisfaction, we had by mere accident in the boat. And
+yet, had it been daylight, they are, it seems, such exact marksmen,
+that if they could have seen but the least part of any of us, they
+would have been sure of us. We had, by the light of the moon, a
+little sight of them, as they stood pelting us from the shore with
+darts and arrows; and having got ready our firearms, we gave them a
+volley that we could hear, by the cries of some of them, had
+wounded several; however, they stood thus in battle array on the
+shore till break of day, which we supposed was that they might see
+the better to take their aim at us.
+
+In this condition we lay, and could not tell how to weigh our
+anchor, or set up our sail, because we must needs stand up in the
+boat, and they were as sure to hit us as we were to hit a bird in a
+tree with small shot. We made signals of distress to the ship, and
+though she rode a league off, yet my nephew, the captain, hearing
+our firing, and by glasses perceiving the posture we lay in, and
+that we fired towards the shore, pretty well understood us; and
+weighing anchor with all speed, he stood as near the shore as he
+durst with the ship, and then sent another boat with ten hands in
+her, to assist us. We called to them not to come too near, telling
+them what condition we were in; however, they stood in near to us,
+and one of the men taking the end of a tow-line in his hand, and
+keeping our boat between him and the enemy, so that they could not
+perfectly see him, swam on board us, and made fast the line to the
+boat: upon which we slipped out a little cable, and leaving our
+anchor behind, they towed us out of reach of the arrows; we all the
+while lying close behind the barricade we had made. As soon as we
+were got from between the ship and the shore, that we could lay her
+side to the shore, she ran along just by them, and poured in a
+broadside among them, loaded with pieces of iron and lead, small
+bullets, and such stuff, besides the great shot, which made a
+terrible havoc among them.
+
+When we were got on board and out of danger, we had time to examine
+into the occasion of this fray; and indeed our supercargo, who had
+been often in those parts, put me upon it; for he said he was sure
+the inhabitants would not have touched us after we had made a
+truce, if we had not done something to provoke them to it. At
+length it came out that an old woman, who had come to sell us some
+milk, had brought it within our poles, and a young woman with her,
+who also brought us some roots or herbs; and while the old woman
+(whether she was mother to the young woman or no they could not
+tell) was selling us the milk, one of our men offered some rudeness
+to the girl that was with her, at which the old woman made a great
+noise: however, the seaman would not quit his prize, but carried
+her out of the old woman's sight among the trees, it being almost
+dark; the old woman went away without her, and, as we may suppose,
+made an outcry among the people she came from; who, upon notice,
+raised that great army upon us in three or four hours, and it was
+great odds but we had all been destroyed.
+
+One of our men was killed with a lance thrown at him just at the
+beginning of the attack, as he sallied out of the tent they had
+made; the rest came off free, all but the fellow who was the
+occasion of all the mischief, who paid dear enough for his
+brutality, for we could not hear what became of him for a great
+while. We lay upon the shore two days after, though the wind
+presented, and made signals for him, and made our boat sail up
+shore and down shore several leagues, but in vain; so we were
+obliged to give him over; and if he alone had suffered for it, the
+loss had been less. I could not satisfy myself, however, without
+venturing on shore once more, to try if I could learn anything of
+him or them; it was the third night after the action that I had a
+great mind to learn, if I could by any means, what mischief we had
+done, and how the game stood on the Indians' side. I was careful
+to do it in the dark, lest we should be attacked again: but I
+ought indeed to have been sure that the men I went with had been
+under my command, before I engaged in a thing so hazardous and
+mischievous as I was brought into by it, without design.
+
+We took twenty as stout fellows with us as any in the ship, besides
+the supercargo and myself, and we landed two hours before midnight,
+at the same place where the Indians stood drawn up in the evening
+before. I landed here, because my design, as I have said, was
+chiefly to see if they had quitted the field, and if they had left
+any marks behind them of the mischief we had done them, and I
+thought if we could surprise one or two of them, perhaps we might
+get our man again, by way of exchange.
+
+We landed without any noise, and divided our men into two bodies,
+whereof the boatswain commanded one and I the other. We neither
+saw nor heard anybody stir when we landed: and we marched up, one
+body at a distance from another, to the place. At first we could
+see nothing, it being very dark; till by-and-by our boatswain, who
+led the first party, stumbled and fell over a dead body. This made
+them halt a while; for knowing by the circumstances that they were
+at the place where the Indians had stood, they waited for my coming
+up there. We concluded to halt till the moon began to rise, which
+we knew would be in less than an hour, when we could easily discern
+the havoc we had made among them. We told thirty-two bodies upon
+the ground, whereof two were not quite dead; some had an arm and
+some a leg shot off, and one his head; those that were wounded, we
+supposed, they had carried away. When we had made, as I thought, a
+full discovery of all we could come to the knowledge of, I resolved
+on going on board; but the boatswain and his party sent me word
+that they were resolved to make a visit to the Indian town, where
+these dogs, as they called them, dwelt, and asked me to go along
+with them; and if they could find them, as they still fancied they
+should, they did not doubt of getting a good booty; and it might be
+they might find Tom Jeffry there: that was the man's name we had
+lost.
+
+Had they sent to ask my leave to go, I knew well enough what answer
+to have given them; for I should have commanded them instantly on
+board, knowing it was not a hazard fit for us to run, who had a
+ship and ship-loading in our charge, and a voyage to make which
+depended very much upon the lives of the men; but as they sent me
+word they were resolved to go, and only asked me and my company to
+go along with them, I positively refused it, and rose up, for I was
+sitting on the ground, in order to go to the boat. One or two of
+the men began to importune me to go; and when I refused, began to
+grumble, and say they were not under my command, and they would go.
+"Come, Jack," says one of the men, "will you go with me? I'll go
+for one." Jack said he would--and then another--and, in a word,
+they all left me but one, whom I persuaded to stay, and a boy left
+in the boat. So the supercargo and I, with the third man, went
+back to the boat, where we told them we would stay for them, and
+take care to take in as many of them as should be left; for I told
+them it was a mad thing they were going about, and supposed most of
+them would have the fate of Tom Jeffry.
+
+They told me, like seamen, they would warrant it they would come
+off again, and they would take care, &c.; so away they went. I
+entreated them to consider the ship and the voyage, that their
+lives were not their own, and that they were entrusted with the
+voyage, in some measure; that if they miscarried, the ship might be
+lost for want of their help, and that they could not answer for it
+to God or man. But I might as well have talked to the mainmast of
+the ship: they were mad upon their journey; only they gave me good
+words, and begged I would not be angry; that they did not doubt but
+they would be back again in about an hour at furthest; for the
+Indian town, they said, was not above half-a mile off, though they
+found it above two miles before they got to it.
+
+Well, they all went away, and though the attempt was desperate, and
+such as none but madmen would have gone about, yet, to give them
+their due, they went about it as warily as boldly; they were
+gallantly armed, for they had every man a fusee or musket, a
+bayonet, and a pistol; some of them had broad cutlasses, some of
+them had hangers, and the boatswain and two more had poleaxes;
+besides all which they had among them thirteen hand grenadoes.
+Bolder fellows, and better provided, never went about any wicked
+work in the world. When they went out their chief design was
+plunder, and they were in mighty hopes of finding gold there; but a
+circumstance which none of them were aware of set them on fire with
+revenge, and made devils of them all.
+
+When they came to the few Indian houses which they thought had been
+the town, which was not above half a mile off, they were under
+great disappointment, for there were not above twelve or thirteen
+houses, and where the town was, or how big, they knew not. They
+consulted, therefore, what to do, and were some time before they
+could resolve; for if they fell upon these, they must cut all their
+throats; and it was ten to one but some of them might escape, it
+being in the night, though the moon was up; and if one escaped, he
+would run and raise all the town, so they should have a whole army
+upon them; on the other hand, if they went away and left those
+untouched, for the people were all asleep, they could not tell
+which way to look for the town; however, the last was the best
+advice, so they resolved to leave them, and look for the town as
+well as they could. They went on a little way, and found a cow
+tied to a tree; this, they presently concluded, would be a good
+guide to them; for, they said, the cow certainly belonged to the
+town before them, or the town behind them, and if they untied her,
+they should see which way she went: if she went back, they had
+nothing to say to her; but if she went forward, they would follow
+her. So they cut the cord, which was made of twisted flags, and
+the cow went on before them, directly to the town; which, as they
+reported, consisted of above two hundred houses or huts, and in
+some of these they found several families living together.
+
+Here they found all in silence, as profoundly secure as sleep could
+make them: and first, they called another council, to consider
+what they had to do; and presently resolved to divide themselves
+into three bodies, and so set three houses on fire in three parts
+of the town; and as the men came out, to seize them and bind them
+(if any resisted, they need not be asked what to do then), and so
+to search the rest of the houses for plunder: but they resolved to
+march silently first through the town, and see what dimensions it
+was of, and if they might venture upon it or no.
+
+They did so, and desperately resolved that they would venture upon
+them: but while they were animating one another to the work, three
+of them, who were a little before the rest, called out aloud to
+them, and told them that they had found--Tom Jeffry: they all ran
+up to the place, where they found the poor fellow hanging up naked
+by one arm, and his throat cut. There was an Indian house just by
+the tree, where they found sixteen or seventeen of the principal
+Indians, who had been concerned in the fray with us before, and two
+or three of them wounded with our shot; and our men found they were
+awake, and talking one to another in that house, but knew not their
+number.
+
+The sight of their poor mangled comrade so enraged them, as before,
+that they swore to one another that they would be revenged, and
+that not an Indian that came into their hands should have any
+quarter; and to work they went immediately, and yet not so madly as
+might be expected from the rage and fury they were in. Their first
+care was to get something that would soon take fire, but, after a
+little search, they found that would be to no purpose; for most of
+the houses were low, and thatched with flags and rushes, of which
+the country is full; so they presently made some wildfire, as we
+call it, by wetting a little powder in the palm of their hands, and
+in a quarter of an hour they set the town on fire in four or five
+places, and particularly that house where the Indians were not gone
+to bed.
+
+As soon as the fire begun to blaze, the poor frightened creatures
+began to rush out to save their lives, but met with their fate in
+the attempt; and especially at the door, where they drove them
+back, the boatswain himself killing one or two with his poleaxe.
+The house being large, and many in it, he did not care to go in,
+but called for a hand grenado, and threw it among them, which at
+first frightened them, but, when it burst, made such havoc among
+them that they cried out in a hideous manner. In short, most of
+the Indians who were in the open part of the house were killed or
+hurt with the grenado, except two or three more who pressed to the
+door, which the boatswain and two more kept, with their bayonets on
+the muzzles of their pieces, and despatched all that came in their
+way; but there was another apartment in the house, where the prince
+or king, or whatever he was, and several others were; and these
+were kept in till the house, which was by this time all in a light
+flame, fell in upon them, and they were smothered together.
+
+All this while they fired not a gun, because they would not waken
+the people faster than they could master them; but the fire began
+to waken them fast enough, and our fellows were glad to keep a
+little together in bodies; for the fire grew so raging, all the
+houses being made of light combustible stuff, that they could
+hardly bear the street between them. Their business was to follow
+the fire, for the surer execution: as fast as the fire either
+forced the people out of those houses which were burning, or
+frightened them out of others, our people were ready at their doors
+to knock them on the head, still calling and hallooing one to
+another to remember Tom Jeffry.
+
+While this was doing, I must confess I was very uneasy, and
+especially when I saw the flames of the town, which, it being
+night, seemed to be close by me. My nephew, the captain, who was
+roused by his men seeing such a fire, was very uneasy, not knowing
+what the matter was, or what danger I was in, especially hearing
+the guns too, for by this time they began to use their firearms; a
+thousand thoughts oppressed his mind concerning me and the
+supercargo, what would become of us; and at last, though he could
+ill spare any more men, yet not knowing what exigence we might be
+in, he took another boat, and with thirteen men and himself came
+ashore to me.
+
+He was surprised to see me and the supercargo in the boat with no
+more than two men; and though he was glad that we were well, yet he
+was in the same impatience with us to know what was doing; for the
+noise continued, and the flame increased; in short, it was next to
+an impossibility for any men in the world to restrain their
+curiosity to know what had happened, or their concern for the
+safety of the men: in a word, the captain told me he would go and
+help his men, let what would come. I argued with him, as I did
+before with the men, the safety of the ship, the danger of the
+voyage, the interests of the owners and merchants, &c., and told
+him I and the two men would go, and only see if we could at a
+distance learn what was likely to be the event, and come back and
+tell him. It was in vain to talk to my nephew, as it was to talk
+to the rest before; he would go, he said; and he only wished he had
+left but ten men in the ship, for he could not think of having his
+men lost for want of help: he had rather lose the ship, the
+voyage, and his life, and all; and away he went.
+
+I was no more able to stay behind now than I was to persuade them
+not to go; so the captain ordered two men to row back the pinnace,
+and fetch twelve men more, leaving the long-boat at an anchor; and
+that, when they came back, six men should keep the two boats, and
+six more come after us; so that he left only sixteen men in the
+ship: for the whole ship's company consisted of sixty-five men,
+whereof two were lost in the late quarrel which brought this
+mischief on.
+
+Being now on the march, we felt little of the ground we trod on;
+and being guided by the fire, we kept no path, but went directly to
+the place of the flame. If the noise of the guns was surprising to
+us before, the cries of the poor people were now quite of another
+nature, and filled us with horror. I must confess I was never at
+the sacking a city, or at the taking a town by storm. I had heard
+of Oliver Cromwell taking Drogheda, in Ireland, and killing man,
+woman, and child; and I had read of Count Tilly sacking the city of
+Magdeburg and cutting the throats of twenty-two thousand of all
+sexes; but I never had an idea of the thing itself before, nor is
+it possible to describe it, or the horror that was upon our minds
+at hearing it. However, we went on, and at length came to the
+town, though there was no entering the streets of it for the fire.
+The first object we met with was the ruins of a hut or house, or
+rather the ashes of it, for the house was consumed; and just before
+it, plainly now to be seen by the light of the fire, lay four men
+and three women, killed, and, as we thought, one or two more lay in
+the heap among the fire; in short, there were such instances of
+rage, altogether barbarous, and of a fury something beyond what was
+human, that we thought it impossible our men could be guilty of it;
+or, if they were the authors of it, we thought they ought to be
+every one of them put to the worst of deaths. But this was not
+all: we saw the fire increase forward, and the cry went on just as
+the fire went on; so that we were in the utmost confusion. We
+advanced a little way farther, and behold, to our astonishment,
+three naked women, and crying in a most dreadful manner, came
+flying as if they had wings, and after them sixteen or seventeen
+men, natives, in the same terror and consternation, with three of
+our English butchers in the rear, who, when they could not overtake
+them, fired in among them, and one that was killed by their shot
+fell down in our sight. When the rest saw us, believing us to be
+their enemies, and that we would murder them as well as those that
+pursued them, they set up a most dreadful shriek, especially the
+women; and two of them fell down, as if already dead, with the
+fright.
+
+My very soul shrunk within me, and my blood ran chill in my veins,
+when I saw this; and, I believe, had the three English sailors that
+pursued them come on, I had made our men kill them all; however, we
+took some means to let the poor flying creatures know that we would
+not hurt them; and immediately they came up to us, and kneeling
+down, with their hands lifted up, made piteous lamentation to us to
+save them, which we let them know we would: whereupon they crept
+all together in a huddle close behind us, as for protection. I
+left my men drawn up together, and, charging them to hurt nobody,
+but, if possible, to get at some of our people, and see what devil
+it was possessed them, and what they intended to do, and to command
+them off; assuring them that if they stayed till daylight they
+would have a hundred thousand men about their ears: I say I left
+them, and went among those flying people, taking only two of our
+men with me; and there was, indeed, a piteous spectacle among them.
+Some of them had their feet terribly burned with trampling and
+running through the fire; others their hands burned; one of the
+women had fallen down in the fire, and was very much burned before
+she could get out again; and two or three of the men had cuts in
+their backs and thighs, from our men pursuing; and another was shot
+through the body and died while I was there.
+
+I would fain have learned what the occasion of all this was; but I
+could not understand one word they said; though, by signs, I
+perceived some of them knew not what was the occasion themselves.
+I was so terrified in my thoughts at this outrageous attempt that I
+could not stay there, but went back to my own men, and resolved to
+go into the middle of the town, through the fire, or whatever might
+be in the way, and put an end to it, cost what it would;
+accordingly, as I came back to my men, I told them my resolution,
+and commanded them to follow me, when, at the very moment, came
+four of our men, with the boatswain at their head, roving over
+heaps of bodies they had killed, all covered with blood and dust,
+as if they wanted more people to massacre, when our men hallooed to
+them as loud as they could halloo; and with much ado one of them
+made them hear, so that they knew who we were, and came up to us.
+
+As soon as the boatswain saw us, he set up a halloo like a shout of
+triumph, for having, as he thought, more help come; and without
+waiting to hear me, "Captain," says he, "noble captain! I am glad
+you are come; we have not half done yet. Villainous hell-hound
+dogs! I'll kill as many of them as poor Tom has hairs upon his
+head: we have sworn to spare none of them; we'll root out the very
+nation of them from the earth;" and thus he ran on, out of breath,
+too, with action, and would not give us leave to speak a word. At
+last, raising my voice that I might silence him a little,
+"Barbarous dog!" said I, "what are you doing! I won't have one
+creature touched more, upon pain of death; I charge you, upon your
+life, to stop your hands, and stand still here, or you are a dead
+man this minute."--"Why, sir," says he, "do you know what you do,
+or what they have done? If you want a reason for what we have
+done, come hither;" and with that he showed me the poor fellow
+hanging, with his throat cut.
+
+I confess I was urged then myself, and at another time would have
+been forward enough; but I thought they had carried their rage too
+far, and remembered Jacob's words to his sons Simeon and Levi:
+"Cursed be their anger, for it was fierce; and their wrath, for it
+was cruel." But I had now a new task upon my hands; for when the
+men I had carried with me saw the sight, as I had done, I had as
+much to do to restrain them as I should have had with the others;
+nay, my nephew himself fell in with them, and told me, in their
+hearing, that he was only concerned for fear of the men being
+overpowered; and as to the people, he thought not one of them ought
+to live; for they had all glutted themselves with the murder of the
+poor man, and that they ought to be used like murderers. Upon
+these words, away ran eight of my men, with the boatswain and his
+crew, to complete their bloody work; and I, seeing it quite out of
+my power to restrain them, came away pensive and sad; for I could
+not bear the sight, much less the horrible noise and cries of the
+poor wretches that fell into their hands.
+
+I got nobody to come back with me but the supercargo and two men,
+and with these walked back to the boat. It was a very great piece
+of folly in me, I confess, to venture back, as it were, alone; for
+as it began now to be almost day, and the alarm had run over the
+country, there stood about forty men armed with lances and boughs
+at the little place where the twelve or thirteen houses stood,
+mentioned before: but by accident I missed the place, and came
+directly to the seaside, and by the time I got to the seaside it
+was broad day: immediately I took the pinnace and went on board,
+and sent her back to assist the men in what might happen. I
+observed, about the time that I came to the boat-side, that the
+fire was pretty well out, and the noise abated; but in about half-
+an-hour after I got on board, I heard a volley of our men's
+firearms, and saw a great smoke. This, as I understood afterwards,
+was our men falling upon the men, who, as I said, stood at the few
+houses on the way, of whom they killed sixteen or seventeen, and
+set all the houses on fire, but did not meddle with the women or
+children.
+
+By the time the men got to the shore again with the pinnace our men
+began to appear; they came dropping in, not in two bodies as they
+went, but straggling here and there in such a manner, that a small
+force of resolute men might have cut them all off. But the dread
+of them was upon the whole country; and the men were surprised, and
+so frightened, that I believe a hundred of them would have fled at
+the sight of but five of our men. Nor in all this terrible action
+was there a man that made any considerable defence: they were so
+surprised between the terror of the fire and the sudden attack of
+our men in the dark, that they knew not which way to turn
+themselves; for if they fled one way they were met by one party, if
+back again by another, so that they were everywhere knocked down;
+nor did any of our men receive the least hurt, except one that
+sprained his foot, and another that had one of his hands burned.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X--HE IS LEFT ON SHORE
+
+
+
+I was very angry with my nephew, the captain, and indeed with all
+the men, but with him in particular, as well for his acting so out
+of his duty as a commander of the ship, and having the charge of
+the voyage upon him, as in his prompting, rather than cooling, the
+rage of his blind men in so bloody and cruel an enterprise. My
+nephew answered me very respectfully, but told me that when he saw
+the body of the poor seaman whom they had murdered in so cruel and
+barbarous a manner, he was not master of himself, neither could he
+govern his passion; he owned he should not have done so, as he was
+commander of the ship; but as he was a man, and nature moved him,
+he could not bear it. As for the rest of the men, they were not
+subject to me at all, and they knew it well enough; so they took no
+notice of my dislike. The next day we set sail, so we never heard
+any more of it. Our men differed in the account of the number they
+had killed; but according to the best of their accounts, put all
+together, they killed or destroyed about one hundred and fifty
+people, men, women, and children, and left not a house standing in
+the town. As for the poor fellow Tom Jeffry, as he was quite dead
+(for his throat was so cut that his head was half off), it would do
+him no service to bring him away; so they only took him down from
+the tree, where he was hanging by one hand.
+
+However just our men thought this action, I was against them in it,
+and I always, after that time, told them God would blast the
+voyage; for I looked upon all the blood they shed that night to be
+murder in them. For though it is true that they had killed Tom
+Jeffry, yet Jeffry was the aggressor, had broken the truce, and had
+ill-used a young woman of theirs, who came down to them innocently,
+and on the faith of the public capitulation.
+
+The boatswain defended this quarrel when we were afterwards on
+board. He said it was true that we seemed to break the truce, but
+really had not; and that the war was begun the night before by the
+natives themselves, who had shot at us, and killed one of our men
+without any just provocation; so that as we were in a capacity to
+fight them now, we might also be in a capacity to do ourselves
+justice upon them in an extraordinary manner; that though the poor
+man had taken a little liberty with the girl, he ought not to have
+been murdered, and that in such a villainous manner: and that they
+did nothing but what was just and what the laws of God allowed to
+be done to murderers. One would think this should have been enough
+to have warned us against going on shore amongst the heathens and
+barbarians; but it is impossible to make mankind wise but at their
+own expense, and their experience seems to be always of most use to
+them when it is dearest bought.
+
+We were now bound to the Gulf of Persia, and from thence to the
+coast of Coromandel, only to touch at Surat; but the chief of the
+supercargo's design lay at the Bay of Bengal, where, if he missed
+his business outward-bound, he was to go out to China, and return
+to the coast as he came home. The first disaster that befell us
+was in the Gulf of Persia, where five of our men, venturing on
+shore on the Arabian side of the gulf, were surrounded by the
+Arabians, and either all killed or carried away into slavery; the
+rest of the boat's crew were not able to rescue them, and had but
+just time to get off their boat. I began to upbraid them with the
+just retribution of Heaven in this case; but the boatswain very
+warmly told me, he thought I went further in my censures than I
+could show any warrant for in Scripture; and referred to Luke xiii.
+4, where our Saviour intimates that those men on whom the Tower of
+Siloam fell were not sinners above all the Galileans; but that
+which put me to silence in the case was, that not one of these five
+men who were now lost were of those who went on shore to the
+massacre of Madagascar, so I always called it, though our men could
+not bear to hear the word MASSACRE with any patience.
+
+But my frequent preaching to them on this subject had worse
+consequences than I expected; and the boatswain, who had been the
+head of the attempt, came up boldly to me one time, and told me he
+found that I brought that affair continually upon the stage; that I
+made unjust reflections upon it, and had used the men very ill on
+that account, and himself in particular; that as I was but a
+passenger, and had no command in the ship, or concern in the
+voyage, they were not obliged to bear it; that they did not know
+but I might have some ill-design in my head, and perhaps to call
+them to an account for it when they came to England; and that,
+therefore, unless I would resolve to have done with it, and also
+not to concern myself any further with him, or any of his affairs,
+he would leave the ship; for he did not think it safe to sail with
+me among them.
+
+I heard him patiently enough till he had done, and then told him
+that I confessed I had all along opposed the massacre of
+Madagascar, and that I had, on all occasions, spoken my mind freely
+about it, though not more upon him than any of the rest; that as to
+having no command in the ship, that was true; nor did I exercise
+any authority, only took the liberty of speaking my mind in things
+which publicly concerned us all; and what concern I had in the
+voyage was none of his business; that I was a considerable owner in
+the ship. In that claim I conceived I had a right to speak even
+further than I had done, and would not be accountable to him or any
+one else, and began to be a little warm with him. He made but
+little reply to me at that time, and I thought the affair had been
+over. We were at this time in the road at Bengal; and being
+willing to see the place, I went on shore with the supercargo in
+the ship's boat to divert myself; and towards evening was preparing
+to go on board, when one of the men came to me, and told me he
+would not have me trouble myself to come down to the boat, for they
+had orders not to carry me on board any more. Any one may guess
+what a surprise I was in at so insolent a message; and I asked the
+man who bade him deliver that message to me? He told me the
+coxswain.
+
+I immediately found out the supercargo, and told him the story,
+adding that I foresaw there would be a mutiny in the ship; and
+entreated him to go immediately on board and acquaint the captain
+of it. But I might have spared this intelligence, for before I had
+spoken to him on shore the matter was effected on board. The
+boatswain, the gunner, the carpenter, and all the inferior
+officers, as soon as I was gone off in the boat, came up, and
+desired to speak with the captain; and then the boatswain, making a
+long harangue, and repeating all he had said to me, told the
+captain that as I was now gone peaceably on shore, they were loath
+to use any violence with me, which, if I had not gone on shore,
+they would otherwise have done, to oblige me to have gone. They
+therefore thought fit to tell him that as they shipped themselves
+to serve in the ship under his command, they would perform it well
+and faithfully; but if I would not quit the ship, or the captain
+oblige me to quit it, they would all leave the ship, and sail no
+further with him; and at that word ALL he turned his face towards
+the main-mast, which was, it seems, a signal agreed on, when the
+seamen, being got together there, cried out, "ONE AND ALL! ONE AND
+ALL!"
+
+My nephew, the captain, was a man of spirit, and of great presence
+of mind; and though he was surprised, yet he told them calmly that
+he would consider of the matter, but that he could do nothing in it
+till he had spoken to me about it. He used some arguments with
+them, to show them the unreasonableness and injustice of the thing,
+but it was all in vain; they swore, and shook hands round before
+his face, that they would all go on shore unless he would engage to
+them not to suffer me to come any more on board the ship.
+
+This was a hard article upon him, who knew his obligation to me,
+and did not know how I might take it. So he began to talk smartly
+to them; told them that I was a very considerable owner of the
+ship, and that if ever they came to England again it would cost
+them very dear; that the ship was mine, and that he could not put
+me out of it; and that he would rather lose the ship, and the
+voyage too, than disoblige me so much: so they might do as they
+pleased. However, he would go on shore and talk with me, and
+invited the boatswain to go with him, and perhaps they might
+accommodate the matter with me. But they all rejected the
+proposal, and said they would have nothing to do with me any more;
+and if I came on board they would all go on shore. "Well," said
+the captain, "if you are all of this mind, let me go on shore and
+talk with him." So away he came to me with this account, a little
+after the message had been brought to me from the coxswain.
+
+I was very glad to see my nephew, I must confess; for I was not
+without apprehensions that they would confine him by violence, set
+sail, and run away with the ship; and then I had been stripped
+naked in a remote country, having nothing to help myself; in short,
+I had been in a worse case than when I was alone in the island.
+But they had not come to that length, it seems, to my satisfaction;
+and when my nephew told me what they had said to him, and how they
+had sworn and shook hands that they would, one and all, leave the
+ship if I was suffered to come on board, I told him he should not
+be concerned at it at all, for I would stay on shore. I only
+desired he would take care and send me all my necessary things on
+shore, and leave me a sufficient sum of money, and I would find my
+way to England as well as I could. This was a heavy piece of news
+to my nephew, but there was no way to help it but to comply; so, in
+short, he went on board the ship again, and satisfied the men that
+his uncle had yielded to their importunity, and had sent for his
+goods from on board the ship; so that the matter was over in a few
+hours, the men returned to their duty, and I began to consider what
+course I should steer.
+
+I was now alone in a most remote part of the world, for I was near
+three thousand leagues by sea farther off from England than I was
+at my island; only, it is true, I might travel here by land over
+the Great Mogul's country to Surat, might go from thence to Bassora
+by sea, up the Gulf of Persia, and take the way of the caravans,
+over the desert of Arabia, to Aleppo and Scanderoon; from thence by
+sea again to Italy, and so overland into France. I had another way
+before me, which was to wait for some English ships, which were
+coming to Bengal from Achin, on the island of Sumatra, and get
+passage on board them from England. But as I came hither without
+any concern with the East Indian Company, so it would be difficult
+to go from hence without their licence, unless with great favour of
+the captains of the ships, or the company's factors: and to both I
+was an utter stranger.
+
+Here I had the mortification to see the ship set sail without me;
+however, my nephew left me two servants, or rather one companion
+and one servant; the first was clerk to the purser, whom he engaged
+to go with me, and the other was his own servant. I then took a
+good lodging in the house of an Englishwoman, where several
+merchants lodged, some French, two Italians, or rather Jews, and
+one Englishman. Here I stayed above nine months, considering what
+course to take. I had some English goods with me of value, and a
+considerable sum of money; my nephew furnishing me with a thousand
+pieces of eight, and a letter of credit for more if I had occasion,
+that I might not be straitened, whatever might happen. I quickly
+disposed of my goods to advantage; and, as I originally intended, I
+bought here some very good diamonds, which, of all other things,
+were the most proper for me in my present circumstances, because I
+could always carry my whole estate about me.
+
+During my stay here many proposals were made for my return to
+England, but none falling out to my mind, the English merchant who
+lodged with me, and whom I had contracted an intimate acquaintance
+with, came to me one morning, saying: "Countryman, I have a
+project to communicate, which, as it suits with my thoughts, may,
+for aught I know, suit with yours also, when you shall have
+thoroughly considered it. Here we are posted, you by accident and
+I by my own choice, in a part of the world very remote from our own
+country; but it is in a country where, by us who understand trade
+and business, a great deal of money is to be got. If you will put
+one thousand pounds to my one thousand pounds, we will hire a ship
+here, the first we can get to our minds. You shall be captain,
+I'll be merchant, and we'll go a trading voyage to China; for what
+should we stand still for? The whole world is in motion; why
+should we be idle?"
+
+I liked this proposal very well; and the more so because it seemed
+to be expressed with so much goodwill. In my loose, unhinged
+circumstances, I was the fitter to embrace a proposal for trade, or
+indeed anything else. I might perhaps say with some truth, that if
+trade was not my element, rambling was; and no proposal for seeing
+any part of the world which I had never seen before could possibly
+come amiss to me. It was, however, some time before we could get a
+ship to our minds, and when we had got a vessel, it was not easy to
+get English sailors--that is to say, so many as were necessary to
+govern the voyage and manage the sailors which we should pick up
+there. After some time we got a mate, a boatswain, and a gunner,
+English; a Dutch carpenter, and three foremast men. With these we
+found we could do well enough, having Indian seamen, such as they
+were, to make up.
+
+When all was ready we set sail for Achin, in the island of Sumatra,
+and from thence to Siam, where we exchanged some of our wares for
+opium and some arrack; the first a commodity which bears a great
+price among the Chinese, and which at that time was much wanted
+there. Then we went up to Saskan, were eight months out, and on
+our return to Bengal I was very well satisfied with my adventure.
+Our people in England often admire how officers, which the company
+send into India, and the merchants which generally stay there, get
+such very great estates as they do, and sometimes come home worth
+sixty or seventy thousand pounds at a time; but it is little matter
+for wonder, when we consider the innumerable ports and places where
+they have a free commerce; indeed, at the ports where the English
+ships come there is such great and constant demands for the growth
+of all other countries, that there is a certain vent for the
+returns, as well as a market abroad for the goods carried out.
+
+I got so much money by my first adventure, and such an insight into
+the method of getting more, that had I been twenty years younger, I
+should have been tempted to have stayed here, and sought no farther
+for making my fortune; but what was all this to a man upwards of
+threescore, that was rich enough, and came abroad more in obedience
+to a restless desire of seeing the world than a covetous desire of
+gaining by it? A restless desire it really was, for when I was at
+home I was restless to go abroad; and when I was abroad I was
+restless to be at home. I say, what was this gain to me? I was
+rich enough already, nor had I any uneasy desires about getting
+more money; therefore the profit of the voyage to me was of no
+great force for the prompting me forward to further undertakings.
+Hence, I thought that by this voyage I had made no progress at all,
+because I was come back, as I might call it, to the place from
+whence I came, as to a home: whereas, my eye, like that which
+Solomon speaks of, was never satisfied with seeing. I was come
+into a part of the world which I was never in before, and that
+part, in particular, which I heard much of, and was resolved to see
+as much of it as I could: and then I thought I might say I had
+seen all the world that was worth seeing.
+
+But my fellow-traveller and I had different notions: I acknowledge
+his were the more suited to the end of a merchant's life: who,
+when he is abroad upon adventures, is wise to stick to that, as the
+best thing for him, which he is likely to get the most money by.
+On the other hand, mine was the notion of a mad, rambling boy, that
+never cares to see a thing twice over. But this was not all: I
+had a kind of impatience upon me to be nearer home, and yet an
+unsettled resolution which way to go. In the interval of these
+consultations, my friend, who was always upon the search for
+business, proposed another voyage among the Spice Islands, to bring
+home a loading of cloves from the Manillas, or thereabouts.
+
+We were not long in preparing for this voyage; the chief difficulty
+was in bringing me to come into it. However, at last, nothing else
+offering, and as sitting still, to me especially, was the
+unhappiest part of life, I resolved on this voyage too, which we
+made very successfully, touching at Borneo and several other
+islands, and came home in about five months, when we sold our
+spices, with very great profit, to the Persian merchants, who
+carried them away to the Gulf. My friend, when we made up this
+account, smiled at me: "Well, now," said he, with a sort of
+friendly rebuke on my indolent temper, "is not this better than
+walking about here, like a man with nothing to do, and spending our
+time in staring at the nonsense and ignorance of the Pagans?"--
+"Why, truly," said I, "my friend, I think it is, and I begin to be
+a convert to the principles of merchandising; but I must tell you,
+by the way, you do not know what I am doing; for if I once conquer
+my backwardness, and embark heartily, old as I am, I shall harass
+you up and down the world till I tire you; for I shall pursue it so
+eagerly, I shall never let you lie still."
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI--WARNED OF DANGER BY A COUNTRYMAN
+
+
+
+A little while after this there came in a Dutch ship from Batavia;
+she was a coaster, not an European trader, of about two hundred
+tons burden; the men, as they pretended, having been so sickly that
+the captain had not hands enough to go to sea with, so he lay by at
+Bengal; and having, it seems, got money enough, or being willing,
+for other reasons, to go for Europe, he gave public notice he would
+sell his ship. This came to my ears before my new partner heard of
+it, and I had a great mind to buy it; so I went to him and told him
+of it. He considered a while, for he was no rash man neither; and
+at last replied, "She is a little too big--however, we will have
+her." Accordingly, we bought the ship, and agreeing with the
+master, we paid for her, and took possession. When we had done so
+we resolved to engage the men, if we could, to join with those we
+had, for the pursuing our business; but, on a sudden, they having
+received not their wages, but their share of the money, as we
+afterwards learned, not one of them was to be found; we inquired
+much about them, and at length were told that they were all gone
+together by land to Agra, the great city of the Mogul's residence,
+to proceed from thence to Surat, and then go by sea to the Gulf of
+Persia.
+
+Nothing had so much troubled me a good while as that I should miss
+the opportunity of going with them; for such a ramble, I thought,
+and in such company as would both have guarded and diverted me,
+would have suited mightily with my great design; and I should have
+both seen the world and gone homeward too. But I was much better
+satisfied a few days after, when I came to know what sort of
+fellows they were; for, in short, their history was, that this man
+they called captain was the gunner only, not the commander; that
+they had been a trading voyage, in which they had been attacked on
+shore by some of the Malays, who had killed the captain and three
+of his men; and that after the captain was killed, these men,
+eleven in number, having resolved to run away with the ship,
+brought her to Bengal, leaving the mate and five men more on shore.
+
+Well, let them get the ship how they would, we came honestly by
+her, as we thought, though we did not, I confess, examine into
+things so exactly as we ought; for we never inquired anything of
+the seamen, who would certainly have faltered in their account, and
+contradicted one another. Somehow or other we should have had
+reason to have suspected, them; but the man showed us a bill of
+sale for the ship, to one Emanuel Clostershoven, or some such name,
+for I suppose it was all a forgery, and called himself by that
+name, and we could not contradict him: and withal, having no
+suspicion of the thing, we went through with our bargain. We
+picked up some more English sailors here after this, and some
+Dutch, and now we resolved on a second voyage to the south-east for
+cloves, &c.--that is to say, among the Philippine and Malacca
+isles. In short, not to fill up this part of my story with trifles
+when what is to come is so remarkable, I spent, from first to last,
+six years in this country, trading from port to port, backward and
+forward, and with very good success, and was now the last year with
+my new partner, going in the ship above mentioned, on a voyage to
+China, but designing first to go to Siam to buy rice.
+
+In this voyage, being by contrary winds obliged to beat up and down
+a great while in the Straits of Malacca and among the islands, we
+were no sooner got clear of those difficult seas than we found our
+ship had sprung a leak, but could not discover where it was. This
+forced us to make some port; and my partner, who knew the country
+better than I did, directed the captain to put into the river of
+Cambodia; for I had made the English mate, one Mr. Thompson,
+captain, not being willing to take the charge of the ship upon
+myself. This river lies on the north side of the great bay or gulf
+which goes up to Siam. While we were here, and going often on
+shore for refreshment, there comes to me one day an Englishman, a
+gunner's mate on board an English East India ship, then riding in
+the same river. "Sir," says he, addressing me, "you are a stranger
+to me, and I to you; but I have something to tell you that very
+nearly concerns you. I am moved by the imminent danger you are in,
+and, for aught I see, you have no knowledge of it."--"I know no
+danger I am in," said I, "but that my ship is leaky, and I cannot
+find it out; but I intend to lay her aground to-morrow, to see if I
+can find it."--"But, sir," says he, "leaky or not leaky, you will
+be wiser than to lay your ship on shore to-morrow when you hear
+what I have to say to you. Do you know, sir," said he, "the town
+of Cambodia lies about fifteen leagues up the river; and there are
+two large English ships about five leagues on this side, and three
+Dutch?"--"Well," said I, "and what is that to me?"--"Why, sir,"
+said be, "is it for a man that is upon such adventures as you are
+to come into a port, and not examine first what ships there are
+there, and whether he is able to deal with them? I suppose you do
+not think you are a match for them?" I could not conceive what he
+meant; and I turned short upon him, and said: "I wish you would
+explain yourself; I cannot imagine what reason I have to be afraid
+of any of the company's ships, or Dutch ships. I am no interloper.
+What can they have to say to me?"--"Well, sir," says he, with a
+smile, "if you think yourself secure you must take your chance; but
+take my advice, if you do not put to sea immediately, you will the
+very next tide be attacked by five longboats full of men, and
+perhaps if you are taken you will be hanged for a pirate, and the
+particulars be examined afterwards. I thought, sir," added he, "I
+should have met with a better reception than this for doing you a
+piece of service of such importance."--"I can never be ungrateful,"
+said I, "for any service, or to any man that offers me any
+kindness; but it is past my comprehension what they should have
+such a design upon me for: however, since you say there is no time
+to be lost, and that there is some villainous design on hand
+against me, I will go on board this minute, and put to sea
+immediately, if my men can stop the leak; but, sir," said I, "shall
+I go away ignorant of the cause of all this? Can you give me no
+further light into it?"
+
+"I can tell you but part of the story, sir," says he; "but I have a
+Dutch seaman here with me, and I believe I could persuade him to
+tell you the rest; but there is scarce time for it. But the short
+of the story is this--the first part of which I suppose you know
+well enough--that you were with this ship at Sumatra; that there
+your captain was murdered by the Malays, with three of his men; and
+that you, or some of those that were on board with you, ran away
+with the ship, and are since turned pirates. This is the sum of
+the story, and you will all be seized as pirates, I can assure you,
+and executed with very little ceremony; for you know merchant ships
+show but little law to pirates if they get them into their power."-
+-"Now you speak plain English," said I, "and I thank you; and
+though I know nothing that we have done like what you talk of, for
+I am sure we came honestly and fairly by the ship; yet seeing such
+a work is doing, as you say, and that you seem to mean honestly, I
+will be upon my guard."--"Nay, sir," says he, "do not talk of being
+upon your guard; the best defence is to be out of danger. If you
+have any regard for your life and the lives of all your men, put to
+sea without fail at high-water; and as you have a whole tide before
+you, you will be gone too far out before they can come down; for
+they will come away at high-water, and as they have twenty miles to
+come, you will get near two hours of them by the difference of the
+tide, not reckoning the length of the way: besides, as they are
+only boats, and not ships, they will not venture to follow you far
+out to sea, especially if it blows."--"Well," said I, "you have
+been very kind in this: what shall I do to make you amends?"--
+"Sir," says he, "you may not be willing to make me any amends,
+because you may not be convinced of the truth of it. I will make
+an offer to you: I have nineteen months' pay due to me on board
+the ship -, which I came out of England in; and the Dutchman that
+is with me has seven months' pay due to him. If you will make good
+our pay to us we will go along with you; if you find nothing more
+in it we will desire no more; but if we do convince you that we
+have saved your lives, and the ship, and the lives of all the men
+in her, we will leave the rest to you."
+
+I consented to this readily, and went immediately on board, and the
+two men with me. As soon as I came to the ship's side, my partner,
+who was on board, came out on the quarter-deck, and called to me,
+with a great deal of joy, "We have stopped the leak--we have
+stopped the leak!"--"Say you so?" said I; "thank God; but weigh
+anchor, then, immediately."--"Weigh!" says he; "what do you mean by
+that? What is the matter?"--"Ask no questions," said I; "but set
+all hands to work, and weigh without losing a minute." He was
+surprised; however, he called the captain, and he immediately
+ordered the anchor to be got up; and though the tide was not quite
+down, yet a little land-breeze blowing, we stood out to sea. Then
+I called him into the cabin, and told him the story; and we called
+in the men, and they told us the rest of it; but as it took up a
+great deal of time, before we had done a seaman comes to the cabin
+door, and called out to us that the captain bade him tell us we
+were chased by five sloops, or boats, full of men. "Very well,"
+said I, "then it is apparent there is something in it." I then
+ordered all our men to be called up, and told them there was a
+design to seize the ship, and take us for pirates, and asked them
+if they would stand by us, and by one another; the men answered
+cheerfully, one and all, that they would live and die with us.
+Then I asked the captain what way he thought best for us to manage
+a fight with them; for resist them I was resolved we would, and
+that to the last drop. He said readily, that the way was to keep
+them off with our great shot as long as we could, and then to use
+our small arms, to keep them from boarding us; but when neither of
+these would do any longer, we would retire to our close quarters,
+for perhaps they had not materials to break open our bulkheads, or
+get in upon us.
+
+The gunner had in the meantime orders to bring two guns, to bear
+fore and aft, out of the steerage, to clear the deck, and load them
+with musket-bullets, and small pieces of old iron, and what came
+next to hand. Thus we made ready for fight; but all this while we
+kept out to sea, with wind enough, and could see the boats at a
+distance, being five large longboats, following us with all the
+sail they could make.
+
+Two of those boats (which by our glasses we could see were English)
+outsailed the rest, were near two leagues ahead of them, and gained
+upon us considerably, so that we found they would come up with us;
+upon which we fired a gun without ball, to intimate that they
+should bring to: and we put out a flag of truce, as a signal for
+parley: but they came crowding after us till within shot, when we
+took in our white flag, they having made no answer to it, and hung
+out a red flag, and fired at them with a shot. Notwithstanding
+this, they came on till they were near enough to call to them with
+a speaking-trumpet, bidding them keep off at their peril.
+
+It was all one; they crowded after us, and endeavoured to come
+under our stern, so as to board us on our quarter; upon which,
+seeing they were resolute for mischief, and depended upon the
+strength that followed them, I ordered to bring the ship to, so
+that they lay upon our broadside; when immediately we fired five
+guns at them, one of which had been levelled so true as to carry
+away the stern of the hindermost boat, and we then forced them to
+take down their sail, and to run all to the head of the boat, to
+keep her from sinking; so she lay by, and had enough of it; but
+seeing the foremost boat crowd on after us, we made ready to fire
+at her in particular. While this was doing one of the three boats
+that followed made up to the boat which we had disabled, to relieve
+her, and we could see her take out the men. We then called again
+to the foremost boat, and offered a truce, to parley again, and to
+know what her business was with us; but had no answer, only she
+crowded close under our stern. Upon this, our gunner who was a
+very dexterous fellow ran out his two case-guns, and fired again at
+her, but the shot missing, the men in the boat shouted, waved their
+caps, and came on. The gunner, getting quickly ready again, fired
+among them a second time, one shot of which, though it missed the
+boat itself, yet fell in among the men, and we could easily see did
+a great deal of mischief among them. We now wore the ship again,
+and brought our quarter to bear upon them, and firing three guns
+more, we found the boat was almost split to pieces; in particular,
+her rudder and a piece of her stern were shot quite away; so they
+handed her sail immediately, and were in great disorder. To
+complete their misfortune, our gunner let fly two guns at them
+again; where he hit them we could not tell, but we found the boat
+was sinking, and some of the men already in the water: upon this,
+I immediately manned out our pinnace, with orders to pick up some
+of the men if they could, and save them from drowning, and
+immediately come on board ship with them, because we saw the rest
+of the boats began to come up. Our men in the pinnace followed
+their orders, and took up three men, one of whom was just drowning,
+and it was a good while before we could recover him. As soon as
+they were on board we crowded all the sail we could make, and stood
+farther out to the sea; and we found that when the other boats came
+up to the first, they gave over their chase.
+
+Being thus delivered from a danger which, though I knew not the
+reason of it, yet seemed to be much greater than I apprehended, I
+resolved that we should change our course, and not let any one know
+whither we were going; so we stood out to sea eastward, quite out
+of the course of all European ships, whether they were bound to
+China or anywhere else, within the commerce of the European
+nations. When we were at sea we began to consult with the two
+seamen, and inquire what the meaning of all this should be; and the
+Dutchman confirmed the gunner's story about the false sale of the
+ship and of the murder of the captain, and also how that he, this
+Dutchman, and four more got into the woods, where they wandered
+about a great while, till at length he made his escape, and swam
+off to a Dutch ship, which was sailing near the shore in its way
+from China.
+
+He then told us that he went to Batavia, where two of the seamen
+belonging to the ship arrived, having deserted the rest in their
+travels, and gave an account that the fellow who had run away with
+the ship, sold her at Bengal to a set of pirates, who were gone a-
+cruising in her, and that they had already taken an English ship
+and two Dutch ships very richly laden. This latter part we found
+to concern us directly, though we knew it to be false; yet, as my
+partner said, very justly, if we had fallen into their hands, and
+they had had such a prepossession against us beforehand, it had
+been in vain for us to have defended ourselves, or to hope for any
+good quarter at their hands; especially considering that our
+accusers had been our judges, and that we could have expected
+nothing from them but what rage would have dictated, and an
+ungoverned passion have executed. Therefore it was his opinion we
+should go directly back to Bengal, from whence we came, without
+putting in at any port whatever--because where we could give a good
+account of ourselves, could prove where we were when the ship put
+in, of whom we bought her, and the like; and what was more than all
+the rest, if we were put upon the necessity of bringing it before
+the proper judges, we should be sure to have some justice, and not
+to be hanged first and judged afterwards.
+
+I was some time of my partner's opinion; but after a little more
+serious thinking, I told him I thought it was a very great hazard
+for us to attempt returning to Bengal, for that we were on the
+wrong side of the Straits of Malacca, and that if the alarm was
+given, we should be sure to be waylaid on every side--that if we
+should be taken, as it were, running away, we should even condemn
+ourselves, and there would want no more evidence to destroy us. I
+also asked the English sailor's opinion, who said he was of my
+mind, and that we certainly should be taken. This danger a little
+startled my partner and all the ship's company, and we immediately
+resolved to go away to the coast of Tonquin, and so on to the coast
+of China--and pursuing the first design as to trade, find some way
+or other to dispose of the ship, and come back in some of the
+vessels of the country such as we could get. This was approved of
+as the best method for our security, and accordingly we steered
+away NNE., keeping above fifty leagues off from the usual course to
+the eastward. This, however, put us to some inconvenience: for,
+first, the winds, when we came that distance from the shore, seemed
+to be more steadily against us, blowing almost trade, as we call
+it, from the E. and ENE., so that we were a long while upon our
+voyage, and we were but ill provided with victuals for so long a
+run; and what was still worse, there was some danger that those
+English and Dutch ships whose boats pursued us, whereof some were
+bound that way, might have got in before us, and if not, some other
+ship bound to China might have information of us from them, and
+pursue us with the same vigour.
+
+I must confess I was now very uneasy, and thought myself, including
+the late escape from the longboats, to have been in the most
+dangerous condition that ever I was in through my past life; for
+whatever ill circumstances I had been in, I was never pursued for a
+thief before; nor had I ever done anything that merited the name of
+dishonest or fraudulent, much less thievish. I had chiefly been my
+own enemy, or, as I may rightly say, I had been nobody's enemy but
+my own; but now I was woefully embarrassed: for though I was
+perfectly innocent, I was in no condition to make that innocence
+appear; and if I had been taken, it had been under a supposed guilt
+of the worst kind. This made me very anxious to make an escape,
+though which way to do it I knew not, or what port or place we
+could go to. My partner endeavoured to encourage me by describing
+the several ports of that coast, and told me he would put in on the
+coast of Cochin China, or the bay of Tonquin, intending afterwards
+to go to Macao, where a great many European families resided, and
+particularly the missionary priests, who usually went thither in
+order to their going forward to China.
+
+Hither then we resolved to go; and, accordingly, though after a
+tedious course, and very much straitened for provisions, we came
+within sight of the coast very early in the morning; and upon
+reflection on the past circumstances of danger we were in, we
+resolved to put into a small river, which, however, had depth
+enough of water for us, and to see if we could, either overland or
+by the ship's pinnace, come to know what ships were in any port
+thereabouts. This happy step was, indeed, our deliverance: for
+though we did not immediately see any European ships in the bay of
+Tonquin, yet the next morning there came into the bay two Dutch
+ships; and a third without any colours spread out, but which we
+believed to be a Dutchman, passed by at about two leagues'
+distance, steering for the coast of China; and in the afternoon
+went by two English ships steering the same course; and thus we
+thought we saw ourselves beset with enemies both one way and the
+other. The place we were in was wild and barbarous, the people
+thieves by occupation; and though it is true we had not much to
+seek of them, and, except getting a few provisions, cared not how
+little we had to do with them, yet it was with much difficulty that
+we kept ourselves from being insulted by them several ways. We
+were in a small river of this country, within a few leagues of its
+utmost limits northward; and by our boat we coasted north-east to
+the point of land which opens the great bay of Tonquin; and it was
+in this beating up along the shore that we discovered we were
+surrounded with enemies. The people we were among were the most
+barbarous of all the inhabitants of the coast; and among other
+customs they have this one: that if any vessel has the misfortune
+to be shipwrecked upon their coast, they make the men all prisoners
+or slaves; and it was not long before we found a spice of their
+kindness this way, on the occasion following.
+
+I have observed above that our ship sprung a leak at sea, and that
+we could not find it out; and it happened that, as I have said, it
+was stopped unexpectedly, on the eve of our being pursued by the
+Dutch and English ships in the bay of Siam; yet, as we did not find
+the ship so perfectly tight and sound as we desired, we resolved
+while we were at this place to lay her on shore, and clean her
+bottom, and, if possible, to find out where the leaks were.
+Accordingly, having lightened the ship, and brought all our guns
+and other movables to one side, we tried to bring her down, that we
+might come at her bottom; but, on second thoughts, we did not care
+to lay her on dry ground, neither could we find out a proper place
+for it.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII--THE CARPENTER'S WHIMSICAL CONTRIVANCE
+
+
+
+The inhabitants came wondering down the shore to look at us; and
+seeing the ship lie down on one side in such a manner, and heeling
+in towards the shore, and not seeing our men, who were at work on
+her bottom with stages, and with their boats on the off-side, they
+presently concluded that the ship was cast away, and lay fast on
+the ground. On this supposition they came about us in two or three
+hours' time with ten or twelve large boats, having some of them
+eight, some ten men in a boat, intending, no doubt, to have come on
+board and plundered the ship, and if they found us there, to have
+carried us away for slaves.
+
+When they came up to the ship, and began to row round her, they
+discovered us all hard at work on the outside of the ship's bottom
+and side, washing, and graving, and stopping, as every seafaring
+man knows how. They stood for a while gazing at us, and we, who
+were a little surprised, could not imagine what their design was;
+but being willing to be sure, we took this opportunity to get some
+of us into the ship, and others to hand down arms and ammunition to
+those that were at work, to defend themselves with if there should
+be occasion. And it was no more than need: for in less than a
+quarter of an hour's consultation, they agreed, it seems, that the
+ship was really a wreck, and that we were all at work endeavouring
+to save her, or to save our lives by the help of our boats; and
+when we handed our arms into the boat, they concluded, by that act,
+that we were endeavouring to save some of our goods. Upon this,
+they took it for granted we all belonged to them, and away they
+came directly upon our men, as if it had been in a line-of-battle.
+
+Our men, seeing so many of them, began to be frightened, for we lay
+but in an ill posture to fight, and cried out to us to know what
+they should do. I immediately called to the men that worked upon
+the stages to slip them down, and get up the side into the ship,
+and bade those in the boat to row round and come on board. The few
+who were on board worked with all the strength and hands we had to
+bring the ship to rights; however, neither the men upon the stages
+nor those in the boats could do as they were ordered before the
+Cochin Chinese were upon them, when two of their boats boarded our
+longboat, and began to lay hold of the men as their prisoners.
+
+The first man they laid hold of was an English seaman, a stout,
+strong fellow, who having a musket in his hand, never offered to
+fire it, but laid it down in the boat, like a fool, as I thought;
+but he understood his business better than I could teach him, for
+he grappled the Pagan, and dragged him by main force out of their
+boat into ours, where, taking him by the ears, he beat his head so
+against the boat's gunnel that the fellow died in his hands. In
+the meantime, a Dutchman, who stood next, took up the musket, and
+with the butt-end of it so laid about him, that he knocked down
+five of them who attempted to enter the boat. But this was doing
+little towards resisting thirty or forty men, who, fearless because
+ignorant of their danger, began to throw themselves into the
+longboat, where we had but five men in all to defend it; but the
+following accident, which deserved our laughter, gave our men a
+complete victory.
+
+Our carpenter being prepared to grave the outside of the ship, as
+well as to pay the seams where he had caulked her to stop the
+leaks, had got two kettles just let down into the boat, one filled
+with boiling pitch, and the other with rosin, tallow, and oil, and
+such stuff as the shipwrights use for that work; and the man that
+attended the carpenter had a great iron ladle in his hand, with
+which he supplied the men that were at work with the hot stuff.
+Two of the enemy's men entered the boat just where this fellow
+stood in the foresheets; he immediately saluted them with a ladle
+full of the stuff, boiling hot which so burned and scalded them,
+being half-naked that they roared out like bulls, and, enraged with
+the fire, leaped both into the sea. The carpenter saw it, and
+cried out, "Well done, Jack! give them some more of it!" and
+stepping forward himself, takes one of the mops, and dipping it in
+the pitch-pot, he and his man threw it among them so plentifully
+that, in short, of all the men in the three boats, there was not
+one that escaped being scalded in a most frightful manner, and made
+such a howling and crying that I never heard a worse noise.
+
+I was never better pleased with a victory in my life; not only as
+it was a perfect surprise to me, and that our danger was imminent
+before, but as we got this victory without any bloodshed, except of
+that man the seaman killed with his naked hands, and which I was
+very much concerned at. Although it maybe a just thing, because
+necessary (for there is no necessary wickedness in nature), yet I
+thought it was a sad sort of life, when we must be always obliged
+to be killing our fellow-creatures to preserve ourselves; and,
+indeed, I think so still; and I would even now suffer a great deal
+rather than I would take away the life even of the worst person
+injuring me; and I believe all considering people, who know the
+value of life, would be of my opinion, if they entered seriously
+into the consideration of it.
+
+All the while this was doing, my partner and I, who managed the
+rest of the men on board, had with great dexterity brought the ship
+almost to rights, and having got the guns into their places again,
+the gunner called to me to bid our boat get out of the way, for he
+would let fly among them. I called back again to him, and bid him
+not offer to fire, for the carpenter would do the work without him;
+but bid him heat another pitch-kettle, which our cook, who was on
+broad, took care of. However, the enemy was so terrified with what
+they had met with in their first attack, that they would not come
+on again; and some of them who were farthest off, seeing the ship
+swim, as it were, upright, began, as we suppose, to see their
+mistake, and gave over the enterprise, finding it was not as they
+expected. Thus we got clear of this merry fight; and having got
+some rice and some roots and bread, with about sixteen hogs, on
+board two days before, we resolved to stay here no longer, but go
+forward, whatever came of it; for we made no doubt but we should be
+surrounded the next day with rogues enough, perhaps more than our
+pitch-kettle would dispose of for us. We therefore got all our
+things on board the same evening, and the next morning were ready
+to sail: in the meantime, lying at anchor at some distance from
+the shore, we were not so much concerned, being now in a fighting
+posture, as well as in a sailing posture, if any enemy had
+presented. The next day, having finished our work within board,
+and finding our ship was perfectly healed of all her leaks, we set
+sail. We would have gone into the bay of Tonquin, for we wanted to
+inform ourselves of what was to be known concerning the Dutch ships
+that had been there; but we durst not stand in there, because we
+had seen several ships go in, as we supposed, but a little before;
+so we kept on NE. towards the island of Formosa, as much afraid of
+being seen by a Dutch or English merchant ship as a Dutch or
+English merchant ship in the Mediterranean is of an Algerine man-
+of-war.
+
+When we were thus got to sea, we kept on NE., as if we would go to
+the Manillas or the Philippine Islands; and this we did that we
+might not fall into the way of any of the European ships; and then
+we steered north, till we came to the latitude of 22 degrees 30
+seconds, by which means we made the island of Formosa directly,
+where we came to an anchor, in order to get water and fresh
+provisions, which the people there, who are very courteous in their
+manners, supplied us with willingly, and dealt very fairly and
+punctually with us in all their agreements and bargains. This is
+what we did not find among other people, and may be owing to the
+remains of Christianity which was once planted here by a Dutch
+missionary of Protestants, and it is a testimony of what I have
+often observed, viz. that the Christian religion always civilises
+the people, and reforms their manners, where it is received,
+whether it works saving effects upon them or no.
+
+From thence we sailed still north, keeping the coast of China at an
+equal distance, till we knew we were beyond all the ports of China
+where our European ships usually come; being resolved, if possible,
+not to fall into any of their hands, especially in this country,
+where, as our circumstances were, we could not fail of being
+entirely ruined. Being now come to the latitude of 30 degrees, we
+resolved to put into the first trading port we should come at; and
+standing in for the shore, a boat came of two leagues to us with an
+old Portuguese pilot on board, who, knowing us to be an European
+ship, came to offer his service, which, indeed, we were glad of and
+took him on board; upon which, without asking us whither we would
+go, he dismissed the boat he came in, and sent it back. I thought
+it was now so much in our choice to make the old man carry us
+whither we would, that I began to talk to him about carrying us to
+the Gulf of Nankin, which is the most northern part of the coast of
+China. The old man said he knew the Gulf of Nankin very well; but
+smiling, asked us what we would do there? I told him we would sell
+our cargo and purchase China wares, calicoes, raw silks, tea,
+wrought silks, &c.; and so we would return by the same course we
+came. He told us our best port would have been to put in at Macao,
+where we could not have failed of a market for our opium to our
+satisfaction, and might for our money have purchased all sorts of
+China goods as cheap as we could at Nankin.
+
+Not being able to put the old man out of his talk, of which he was
+very opinionated or conceited, I told him we were gentlemen as well
+as merchants, and that we had a mind to go and see the great city
+of Pekin, and the famous court of the monarch of China. "Why,
+then," says the old man, "you should go to Ningpo, where, by the
+river which runs into the sea there, you may go up within five
+leagues of the great canal. This canal is a navigable stream,
+which goes through the heart of that vast empire of China, crosses
+all the rivers, passes some considerable hills by the help of
+sluices and gates, and goes up to the city of Pekin, being in
+length near two hundred and seventy leagues."--"Well," said I,
+"Seignior Portuguese, but that is not our business now; the great
+question is, if you can carry us up to the city of Nankin, from
+whence we can travel to Pekin afterwards?" He said he could do so
+very well, and that there was a great Dutch ship gone up that way
+just before. This gave me a little shock, for a Dutch ship was now
+our terror, and we had much rather have met the devil, at least if
+he had not come in too frightful a figure; and we depended upon it
+that a Dutch ship would be our destruction, for we were in no
+condition to fight them; all the ships they trade with into those
+parts being of great burden, and of much greater force than we
+were.
+
+The old man found me a little confused, and under some concern when
+he named a Dutch ship, and said to me, "Sir, you need be under no
+apprehensions of the Dutch; I suppose they are not now at war with
+your nation?"--"No," said I, "that's true; but I know not what
+liberties men may take when they are out of the reach of the laws
+of their own country."--"Why," says he, "you are no pirates; what
+need you fear? They will not meddle with peaceable merchants,
+sure." These words put me into the greatest disorder and confusion
+imaginable; nor was it possible for me to conceal it so, but the
+old man easily perceived it.
+
+"Sir," says he, "I find you are in some disorder in your thoughts
+at my talk: pray be pleased to go which way you think fit, and
+depend upon it, I'll do you all the service I can." Upon this we
+fell into further discourse, in which, to my alarm and amazement,
+he spoke of the villainous doings of a certain pirate ship that had
+long been the talk of mariners in those seas; no other, in a word,
+than the very ship he was now on board of, and which we had so
+unluckily purchased. I presently saw there was no help for it but
+to tell him the plain truth, and explain all the danger and trouble
+we had suffered through this misadventure, and, in particular, our
+earnest wish to be speedily quit of the ship altogether; for which
+reason we had resolved to carry her up to Nankin.
+
+The old man was amazed at this relation, and told us we were in the
+right to go away to the north; and that, if he might advise us, it
+should be to sell the ship in China, which we might well do, and
+buy, or build another in the country; adding that I should meet
+with customers enough for the ship at Nankin, that a Chinese junk
+would serve me very well to go back again, and that he would
+procure me people both to buy one and sell the other. "Well, but,
+seignior," said I, "as you say they know the ship so well, I may,
+perhaps, if I follow your measures, be instrumental to bring some
+honest, innocent men into a terrible broil; for wherever they find
+the ship they will prove the guilt upon the men, by proving this
+was the ship."--"Why," says the old man, "I'll find out a way to
+prevent that; for as I know all those commanders you speak of very
+well, and shall see them all as they pass by, I will be sure to set
+them to rights in the thing, and let them know that they had been
+so much in the wrong; that though the people who were on board at
+first might run away with the ship, yet it was not true that they
+had turned pirates; and that, in particular, these were not the men
+that first went off with the ship, but innocently bought her for
+their trade; and I am persuaded they will so far believe me as at
+least to act more cautiously for the time to come."
+
+In about thirteen days' sail we came to an anchor, at the south-
+west point of the great Gulf of Nankin; where I learned by accident
+that two Dutch ships were gone the length before me, and that I
+should certainly fall into their hands. I consulted my partner
+again in this exigency, and he was as much at a loss as I was. I
+then asked the old pilot if there was no creek or harbour which I
+might put into and pursue my business with the Chinese privately,
+and be in no danger of the enemy. He told me if I would sail to
+the southward about forty-two leagues, there was a little port
+called Quinchang, where the fathers of the mission usually landed
+from Macao, on their progress to teach the Christian religion to
+the Chinese, and where no European ships ever put in; and if I
+thought to put in there, I might consider what further course to
+take when I was on shore. He confessed, he said, it was not a
+place for merchants, except that at some certain times they had a
+kind of a fair there, when the merchants from Japan came over
+thither to buy Chinese merchandises. The name of the port I may
+perhaps spell wrong, having lost this, together with the names of
+many other places set down in a little pocket-book, which was
+spoiled by the water by an accident; but this I remember, that the
+Chinese merchants we corresponded with called it by a different
+name from that which our Portuguese pilot gave it, who pronounced
+it Quinchang. As we were unanimous in our resolution to go to this
+place, we weighed the next day, having only gone twice on shore
+where we were, to get fresh water; on both which occasions the
+people of the country were very civil, and brought abundance of
+provisions to sell to us; but nothing without money.
+
+We did not come to the other port (the wind being contrary) for
+five days; but it was very much to our satisfaction, and I was
+thankful when I set my foot on shore, resolving, and my partner
+too, that if it was possible to dispose of ourselves and effects
+any other way, though not profitably, we would never more set foot
+on board that unhappy vessel. Indeed, I must acknowledge, that of
+all the circumstances of life that ever I had any experience of,
+nothing makes mankind so completely miserable as that of being in
+constant fear. Well does the Scripture say, "The fear of man
+brings a snare"; it is a life of death, and the mind is so entirely
+oppressed by it, that it is capable of no relief.
+
+Nor did it fail of its usual operations upon the fancy, by
+heightening every danger; representing the English and Dutch
+captains to be men incapable of hearing reason, or of
+distinguishing between honest men and rogues; or between a story
+calculated for our own turn, made out of nothing, on purpose to
+deceive, and a true, genuine account of our whole voyage, progress,
+and design; for we might many ways have convinced any reasonable
+creatures that we were not pirates; the goods we had on board, the
+course we steered, our frankly showing ourselves, and entering into
+such and such ports; and even our very manner, the force we had,
+the number of men, the few arms, the little ammunition, short
+provisions; all these would have served to convince any men that we
+were no pirates. The opium and other goods we had on board would
+make it appear the ship had been at Bengal. The Dutchmen, who, it
+was said, had the names of all the men that were in the ship, might
+easily see that we were a mixture of English, Portuguese, and
+Indians, and but two Dutchmen on board. These, and many other
+particular circumstances, might have made it evident to the
+understanding of any commander, whose hands we might fall into,
+that we were no pirates.
+
+But fear, that blind, useless passion, worked another way, and
+threw us into the vapours; it bewildered our understandings, and
+set the imagination at work to form a thousand terrible things that
+perhaps might never happen. We first supposed, as indeed everybody
+had related to us, that the seamen on board the English and Dutch
+ships, but especially the Dutch, were so enraged at the name of a
+pirate, and especially at our beating off their boats and escaping,
+that they would not give themselves leave to inquire whether we
+were pirates or no, but would execute us off-hand, without giving
+us any room for a defence. We reflected that there really was so
+much apparent evidence before them, that they would scarce inquire
+after any more; as, first, that the ship was certainly the same,
+and that some of the seamen among them knew her, and had been on
+board her; and, secondly, that when we had intelligence at the
+river of Cambodia that they were coming down to examine us, we
+fought their boats and fled. Therefore we made no doubt but they
+were as fully satisfied of our being pirates as we were satisfied
+of the contrary; and, as I often said, I know not but I should have
+been apt to have taken those circumstances for evidence, if the
+tables were turned, and my case was theirs; and have made no
+scruple of cutting all the crew to pieces, without believing, or
+perhaps considering, what they might have to offer in their
+defence.
+
+But let that be how it will, these were our apprehensions; and both
+my partner and I scarce slept a night without dreaming of halters
+and yard-arms; of fighting, and being taken; of killing, and being
+killed: and one night I was in such a fury in my dream, fancying
+the Dutchmen had boarded us, and I was knocking one of their seamen
+down, that I struck my doubled fist against the side of the cabin I
+lay in with such a force as wounded my hand grievously, broke my
+knuckles, and cut and bruised the flesh, so that it awaked me out
+of my sleep. Another apprehension I had was, the cruel usage we
+might meet with from them if we fell into their hands; then the
+story of Amboyna came into my head, and how the Dutch might perhaps
+torture us, as they did our countrymen there, and make some of our
+men, by extremity of torture, confess to crimes they never were
+guilty of, or own themselves and all of us to be pirates, and so
+they would put us to death with a formal appearance of justice; and
+that they might be tempted to do this for the gain of our ship and
+cargo, worth altogether four or five thousand pounds. We did not
+consider that the captains of ships have no authority to act thus;
+and if we had surrendered prisoners to them, they could not answer
+the destroying us, or torturing us, but would be accountable for it
+when they came to their country. However, if they were to act thus
+with us, what advantage would it be to us that they should be
+called to an account for it?--or if we were first to be murdered,
+what satisfaction would it be to us to have them punished when they
+came home?
+
+I cannot refrain taking notice here what reflections I now had upon
+the vast variety of my particular circumstances; how hard I thought
+it that I, who had spent forty years in a life of continual
+difficulties, and was at last come, as it were, to the port or
+haven which all men drive at, viz. to have rest and plenty, should
+be a volunteer in new sorrows by my own unhappy choice, and that I,
+who had escaped so many dangers in my youth, should now come to be
+hanged in my old age, and in so remote a place, for a crime which I
+was not in the least inclined to, much less guilty of. After these
+thoughts something of religion would come in; and I would be
+considering that this seemed to me to be a disposition of immediate
+Providence, and I ought to look upon it and submit to it as such.
+For, although I was innocent as to men, I was far from being
+innocent as to my Maker; and I ought to look in and examine what
+other crimes in my life were most obvious to me, and for which
+Providence might justly inflict this punishment as a retribution;
+and thus I ought to submit to this, just as I would to a shipwreck,
+if it had pleased God to have brought such a disaster upon me.
+
+In its turn natural courage would sometimes take its place, and
+then I would be talking myself up to vigorous resolutions; that I
+would not be taken to be barbarously used by a parcel of merciless
+wretches in cold blood; that it were much better to have fallen
+into the hands of the savages, though I were sure they would feast
+upon me when they had taken me, than those who would perhaps glut
+their rage upon me by inhuman tortures and barbarities; that in the
+case of the savages, I always resolved to die fighting to the last
+gasp, and why should I not do so now? Whenever these thoughts
+prevailed, I was sure to put myself into a kind of fever with the
+agitation of a supposed fight; my blood would boil, and my eyes
+sparkle, as if I was engaged, and I always resolved to take no
+quarter at their hands; but even at last, if I could resist no
+longer, I would blow up the ship and all that was in her, and leave
+them but little booty to boast of.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII--ARRIVAL IN CHINA
+
+
+
+The greater weight the anxieties and perplexities of these things
+were to our thoughts while we were at sea, the greater was our
+satisfaction when we saw ourselves on shore; and my partner told me
+he dreamed that he had a very heavy load upon his back, which he
+was to carry up a hill, and found that he was not able to stand
+longer under it; but that the Portuguese pilot came and took it off
+his back, and the hill disappeared, the ground before him appearing
+all smooth and plain: and truly it was so; they were all like men
+who had a load taken off their backs. For my part I had a weight
+taken off from my heart that it was not able any longer to bear;
+and as I said above we resolved to go no more to sea in that ship.
+When we came on shore, the old pilot, who was now our friend, got
+us a lodging, together with a warehouse for our goods; it was a
+little hut, with a larger house adjoining to it, built and also
+palisadoed round with canes, to keep out pilferers, of which there
+were not a few in that country: however, the magistrates allowed
+us a little guard, and we had a soldier with a kind of half-pike,
+who stood sentinel at our door, to whom we allowed a pint of rice
+and a piece of money about the value of three-pence per day, so
+that our goods were kept very safe.
+
+The fair or mart usually kept at this place had been over some
+time; however, we found that there were three or four junks in the
+river, and two ships from Japan, with goods which they had bought
+in China, and were not gone away, having some Japanese merchants on
+shore.
+
+The first thing our old Portuguese pilot did for us was to get us
+acquainted with three missionary Romish priests who were in the
+town, and who had been there some time converting the people to
+Christianity; but we thought they made but poor work of it, and
+made them but sorry Christians when they had done. One of these
+was a Frenchman, whom they called Father Simon; another was a
+Portuguese; and a third a Genoese. Father Simon was courteous, and
+very agreeable company; but the other two were more reserved,
+seemed rigid and austere, and applied seriously to the work they
+came about, viz. to talk with and insinuate themselves among the
+inhabitants wherever they had opportunity. We often ate and drank
+with those men; and though I must confess the conversion, as they
+call it, of the Chinese to Christianity is so far from the true
+conversion required to bring heathen people to the faith of Christ,
+that it seems to amount to little more than letting them know the
+name of Christ, and say some prayers to the Virgin Mary and her
+Son, in a tongue which they understood not, and to cross
+themselves, and the like; yet it must be confessed that the
+religionists, whom we call missionaries, have a firm belief that
+these people will be saved, and that they are the instruments of
+it; and on this account they undergo not only the fatigue of the
+voyage, and the hazards of living in such places, but oftentimes
+death itself, and the most violent tortures, for the sake of this
+work.
+
+Father Simon was appointed, it seems, by order of the chief of the
+mission, to go up to Pekin, and waited only for another priest, who
+was ordered to come to him from Macao, to go along with him. We
+scarce ever met together but he was inviting me to go that journey;
+telling me how he would show me all the glorious things of that
+mighty empire, and, among the rest, Pekin, the greatest city in the
+world: "A city," said he, "that your London and our Paris put
+together cannot be equal to." But as I looked on those things with
+different eyes from other men, so I shall give my opinion of them
+in a few words, when I come in the course of my travels to speak
+more particularly of them.
+
+Dining with Father Simon one day, and being very merry together, I
+showed some little inclination to go with him; and he pressed me
+and my partner very hard to consent. "Why, father," says my
+partner, "should you desire our company so much? you know we are
+heretics, and you do not love us, nor cannot keep us company with
+any pleasure."--"Oh," says he, "you may perhaps be good Catholics
+in time; my business here is to convert heathens, and who knows but
+I may convert you too?"--"Very well, father," said I, "so you will
+preach to us all the way?"--"I will not be troublesome to you,"
+says he; "our religion does not divest us of good manners; besides,
+we are here like countrymen; and so we are, compared to the place
+we are in; and if you are Huguenots, and I a Catholic, we may all
+be Christians at last; at least, we are all gentlemen, and we may
+converse so, without being uneasy to one another." I liked this
+part of his discourse very well, and it began to put me in mind of
+my priest that I had left in the Brazils; but Father Simon did not
+come up to his character by a great deal; for though this friar had
+no appearance of a criminal levity in him, yet he had not that fund
+of Christian zeal, strict piety, and sincere affection to religion
+that my other good ecclesiastic had.
+
+But to leave him a little, though he never left us, nor solicited
+us to go with him; we had something else before us at first, for we
+had all this while our ship and our merchandise to dispose of, and
+we began to be very doubtful what we should do, for we were now in
+a place of very little business. Once I was about to venture to
+sail for the river of Kilam, and the city of Nankin; but Providence
+seemed now more visibly, as I thought, than ever to concern itself
+in our affairs; and I was encouraged, from this very time, to think
+I should, one way or other, get out of this entangled circumstance,
+and be brought home to my own country again, though I had not the
+least view of the manner. Providence, I say, began here to clear
+up our way a little; and the first thing that offered was, that our
+old Portuguese pilot brought a Japan merchant to us, who inquired
+what goods we had: and, in the first place, he bought all our
+opium, and gave us a very good price for it, paying us in gold by
+weight, some in small pieces of their own coin, and some in small
+wedges, of about ten or twelves ounces each. While we were dealing
+with him for our opium, it came into my head that he might perhaps
+deal for the ship too, and I ordered the interpreter to propose it
+to him. He shrunk up his shoulders at it when it was first
+proposed to him; but in a few days after he came to me, with one of
+the missionary priests for his interpreter, and told me he had a
+proposal to make to me, which was this: he had bought a great
+quantity of our goods, when he had no thoughts of proposals made to
+him of buying the ship; and that, therefore, he had not money to
+pay for the ship: but if I would let the same men who were in the
+ship navigate her, he would hire the ship to go to Japan; and would
+send them from thence to the Philippine Islands with another
+loading, which he would pay the freight of before they went from
+Japan: and that at their return he would buy the ship. I began to
+listen to his proposal, and so eager did my head still run upon
+rambling, that I could not but begin to entertain a notion of going
+myself with him, and so to set sail from the Philippine Islands
+away to the South Seas; accordingly, I asked the Japanese merchant
+if he would not hire us to the Philippine Islands and discharge us
+there. He said No, he could not do that, for then he could not
+have the return of his cargo; but he would discharge us in Japan,
+at the ship's return. Well, still I was for taking him at that
+proposal, and going myself; but my partner, wiser than myself,
+persuaded me from it, representing the dangers, as well of the seas
+as of the Japanese, who are a false, cruel, and treacherous people;
+likewise those of the Spaniards at the Philippines, more false,
+cruel, and treacherous than they.
+
+But to bring this long turn of our affairs to a conclusion; the
+first thing we had to do was to consult with the captain of the
+ship, and with his men, and know if they were willing to go to
+Japan. While I was doing this, the young man whom my nephew had
+left with me as my companion came up, and told me that he thought
+that voyage promised very fair, and that there was a great prospect
+of advantage, and he would be very glad if I undertook it; but that
+if I would not, and would give him leave, he would go as a
+merchant, or as I pleased to order him; that if ever he came to
+England, and I was there and alive, he would render me a faithful
+account of his success, which should be as much mine as I pleased.
+I was loath to part with him; but considering the prospect of
+advantage, which really was considerable, and that he was a young
+fellow likely to do well in it, I inclined to let him go; but I
+told him I would consult my partner, and give him an answer the
+next day. I discoursed about it with my partner, who thereupon
+made a most generous offer: "You know it has been an unlucky
+ship," said he, "and we both resolve not to go to sea in it again;
+if your steward" (so he called my man) "will venture the voyage, I
+will leave my share of the vessel to him, and let him make the best
+of it; and if we live to meet in England, and he meets with success
+abroad, he shall account for one half of the profits of the ship's
+freight to us; the other shall be his own."
+
+If my partner, who was no way concerned with my young man, made him
+such an offer, I could not do less than offer him the same; and all
+the ship's company being willing to go with him, we made over half
+the ship to him in property, and took a writing from him, obliging
+him to account for the other, and away he went to Japan. The Japan
+merchant proved a very punctual, honest man to him: protected him
+at Japan, and got him a licence to come on shore, which the
+Europeans in general have not lately obtained. He paid him his
+freight very punctually; sent him to the Philippines loaded with
+Japan and China wares, and a supercargo of their own, who,
+trafficking with the Spaniards, brought back European goods again,
+and a great quantity of spices; and there he was not only paid his
+freight very well, and at a very good price, but not being willing
+to sell the ship, then the merchant furnished him goods on his own
+account; and with some money, and some spices of his own which he
+brought with him, he went back to the Manillas, where he sold his
+cargo very well. Here, having made a good acquaintance at Manilla,
+he got his ship made a free ship, and the governor of Manilla hired
+him to go to Acapulco, on the coast of America, and gave him a
+licence to land there, and to travel to Mexico, and to pass in any
+Spanish ship to Europe with all his men. He made the voyage to
+Acapulco very happily, and there he sold his ship: and having
+there also obtained allowance to travel by land to Porto Bello, he
+found means to get to Jamaica, with all his treasure, and about
+eight years after came to England exceeding rich.
+
+But to return to our particular affairs, being now to part with the
+ship and ship's company, it came before us, of course, to consider
+what recompense we should give to the two men that gave us such
+timely notice of the design against us in the river Cambodia. The
+truth was, they had done us a very considerable service, and
+deserved well at our hands; though, by the way, they were a couple
+of rogues, too; for, as they believed the story of our being
+pirates, and that we had really run away with the ship, they came
+down to us, not only to betray the design that was formed against
+us, but to go to sea with us as pirates. One of them confessed
+afterwards that nothing else but the hopes of going a-roguing
+brought him to do it: however, the service they did us was not the
+less, and therefore, as I had promised to be grateful to them, I
+first ordered the money to be paid them which they said was due to
+them on board their respective ships: over and above that, I gave
+each of them a small sum of money in gold, which contented them
+very well. I then made the Englishman gunner in the ship, the
+gunner being now made second mate and purser; the Dutchman I made
+boatswain; so they were both very well pleased, and proved very
+serviceable, being both able seamen, and very stout fellows.
+
+We were now on shore in China; if I thought myself banished, and
+remote from my own country at Bengal, where I had many ways to get
+home for my money, what could I think of myself now, when I was
+about a thousand leagues farther off from home, and destitute of
+all manner of prospect of return? All we had for it was this:
+that in about four months' time there was to be another fair at the
+place where we were, and then we might be able to purchase various
+manufactures of the country, and withal might possibly find some
+Chinese junks from Tonquin for sail, that would carry us and our
+goods whither we pleased. This I liked very well, and resolved to
+wait; besides, as our particular persons were not obnoxious, so if
+any English or Dutch ships came thither, perhaps we might have an
+opportunity to load our goods, and get passage to some other place
+in India nearer home. Upon these hopes we resolved to continue
+here; but, to divert ourselves, we took two or three journeys into
+the country.
+
+First, we went ten days' journey to Nankin, a city well worth
+seeing; they say it has a million of people in it: it is regularly
+built, and the streets are all straight, and cross one another in
+direct lines. But when I come to compare the miserable people of
+these countries with ours, their fabrics, their manner of living,
+their government, their religion, their wealth, and their glory, as
+some call it, I must confess that I scarcely think it worth my
+while to mention them here. We wonder at the grandeur, the riches,
+the pomp, the ceremonies, the government, the manufactures, the
+commerce, and conduct of these people; not that there is really any
+matter for wonder, but because, having a true notion of the
+barbarity of those countries, the rudeness and the ignorance that
+prevail there, we do not expect to find any such thing so far off.
+Otherwise, what are their buildings to the palaces and royal
+buildings of Europe? What their trade to the universal commerce of
+England, Holland, France, and Spain? What are their cities to
+ours, for wealth, strength, gaiety of apparel, rich furniture, and
+infinite variety? What are their ports, supplied with a few junks
+and barks, to our navigation, our merchant fleets, our large and
+powerful navies? Our city of London has more trade than half their
+mighty empire: one English, Dutch, or French man-of-war of eighty
+guns would be able to fight almost all the shipping belonging to
+China: but the greatness of their wealth, their trade, the power
+of their government, and the strength of their armies, may be a
+little surprising to us, because, as I have said, considering them
+as a barbarous nation of pagans, little better than savages, we did
+not expect such things among them. But all the forces of their
+empire, though they were to bring two millions of men into the
+field together, would be able to do nothing but ruin the country
+and starve themselves; a million of their foot could not stand
+before one embattled body of our infantry, posted so as not to be
+surrounded, though they were not to be one to twenty in number;
+nay, I do not boast if I say that thirty thousand German or English
+foot, and ten thousand horse, well managed, could defeat all the
+forces of China. Nor is there a fortified town in China that could
+hold out one month against the batteries and attacks of an European
+army. They have firearms, it is true, but they are awkward and
+uncertain in their going off; and their powder has but little
+strength. Their armies are badly disciplined, and want skill to
+attack, or temper to retreat; and therefore, I must confess, it
+seemed strange to me, when I came home, and heard our people say
+such fine things of the power, glory, magnificence, and trade of
+the Chinese; because, as far as I saw, they appeared to be a
+contemptible herd or crowd of ignorant, sordid slaves, subjected to
+a government qualified only to rule such a people; and were not its
+distance inconceivably, great from Muscovy, and that empire in a
+manner as rude, impotent, and ill governed as they, the Czar of
+Muscovy might with ease drive them all out of their country, and
+conquer them in one campaign; and had the Czar (who is now a
+growing prince) fallen this way, instead of attacking the warlike
+Swedes, and equally improved himself in the art of war, as they say
+he has done; and if none of the powers of Europe had envied or
+interrupted him, he might by this time have been Emperor of China,
+instead of being beaten by the King of Sweden at Narva, when the
+latter was not one to six in number.
+
+As their strength and their grandeur, so their navigation,
+commerce, and husbandry are very imperfect, compared to the same
+things in Europe; also, in their knowledge, their learning, and in
+their skill in the sciences, they are either very awkward or
+defective, though they have globes or spheres, and a smattering of
+the mathematics, and think they know more than all the world
+besides. But they know little of the motions of the heavenly
+bodies; and so grossly and absurdly ignorant are their common
+people, that when the sun is eclipsed, they think a great dragon
+has assaulted it, and is going to run away with it; and they fall a
+clattering with all the drums and kettles in the country, to fright
+the monster away, just as we do to hive a swarm of bees!
+
+As this is the only excursion of the kind which I have made in all
+the accounts I have given of my travels, so I shall make no more
+such. It is none of my business, nor any part of my design; but to
+give an account of my own adventures through a life of inimitable
+wanderings, and a long variety of changes, which, perhaps, few that
+come after me will have heard the like of: I shall, therefore, say
+very little of all the mighty places, desert countries, and
+numerous people I have yet to pass through, more than relates to my
+own story, and which my concern among them will make necessary.
+
+I was now, as near as I can compute, in the heart of China, about
+thirty degrees north of the line, for we were returned from Nankin.
+I had indeed a mind to see the city of Pekin, which I had heard so
+much of, and Father Simon importuned me daily to do it. At length
+his time of going away being set, and the other missionary who was
+to go with him being arrived from Macao, it was necessary that we
+should resolve either to go or not; so I referred it to my partner,
+and left it wholly to his choice, who at length resolved it in the
+affirmative, and we prepared for our journey. We set out with very
+good advantage as to finding the way; for we got leave to travel in
+the retinue of one of their mandarins, a kind of viceroy or
+principal magistrate in the province where they reside, and who
+take great state upon them, travelling with great attendance, and
+great homage from the people, who are sometimes greatly
+impoverished by them, being obliged to furnish provisions for them
+and all their attendants in their journeys. I particularly
+observed in our travelling with his baggage, that though we
+received sufficient provisions both for ourselves and our horses
+from the country, as belonging to the mandarin, yet we were obliged
+to pay for everything we had, after the market price of the
+country, and the mandarin's steward collected it duly from us.
+Thus our travelling in the retinue of the mandarin, though it was a
+great act of kindness, was not such a mighty favour to us, but was
+a great advantage to him, considering there were above thirty other
+people travelled in the same manner besides us, under the
+protection of his retinue; for the country furnished all the
+provisions for nothing to him, and yet he took our money for them.
+
+We were twenty-five days travelling to Pekin, through a country
+exceeding populous, but I think badly cultivated; the husbandry,
+the economy, and the way of living miserable, though they boast so
+much of the industry of the people: I say miserable, if compared
+with our own, but not so to these poor wretches, who know no other.
+The pride of the poor people is infinitely great, and exceeded by
+nothing but their poverty, in some parts, which adds to that which
+I call their misery; and I must needs think the savages of America
+live much more happy than the poorer sort of these, because as they
+have nothing, so they desire nothing; whereas these are proud and
+insolent and in the main are in many parts mere beggars and
+drudges. Their ostentation is inexpressible; and, if they can,
+they love to keep multitudes of servants or slaves, which is to the
+last degree ridiculous, as well as their contempt of all the world
+but themselves.
+
+I must confess I travelled more pleasantly afterwards in the
+deserts and vast wildernesses of Grand Tartary than here, and yet
+the roads here are well paved and well kept, and very convenient
+for travellers; but nothing was more awkward to me than to see such
+a haughty, imperious, insolent people, in the midst of the grossest
+simplicity and ignorance; and my friend Father Simon and I used to
+be very merry upon these occasions, to see their beggarly pride.
+For example, coming by the house of a country gentleman, as Father
+Simon called him, about ten leagues off the city of Nankin, we had
+first of all the honour to ride with the master of the house about
+two miles; the state he rode in was a perfect Don Quixotism, being
+a mixture of pomp and poverty. His habit was very proper for a
+merry-andrew, being a dirty calico, with hanging sleeves, tassels,
+and cuts and slashes almost on every side: it covered a taffety
+vest, so greasy as to testify that his honour must be a most
+exquisite sloven. His horse was a poor, starved, hobbling
+creature, and two slaves followed him on foot to drive the poor
+creature along; he had a whip in his hand, and he belaboured the
+beast as fast about the head as his slaves did about the tail; and
+thus he rode by us, with about ten or twelve servants, going from
+the city to his country seat, about half a league before us. We
+travelled on gently, but this figure of a gentleman rode away
+before us; and as we stopped at a village about an hour to refresh
+us, when we came by the country seat of this great man, we saw him
+in a little place before his door, eating a repast. It was a kind
+of garden, but he was easy to be seen; and we were given to
+understand that the more we looked at him the better he would be
+pleased. He sat under a tree, something like the palmetto, which
+effectually shaded him over the head, and on the south side; but
+under the tree was placed a large umbrella, which made that part
+look well enough. He sat lolling back in a great elbow-chair,
+being a heavy corpulent man, and had his meat brought him by two
+women slaves. He had two more, one of whom fed the squire with a
+spoon, and the other held the dish with one hand, and scraped off
+what he let fall upon his worship's beard and taffety vest.
+
+Leaving the poor wretch to please himself with our looking at him,
+as if we admired his idle pomp, we pursued our journey. Father
+Simon had the curiosity to stay to inform himself what dainties the
+country justice had to feed on in all his state, which he had the
+honour to taste of, and which was, I think, a mess of boiled rice,
+with a great piece of garlic in it, and a little bag filled with
+green pepper, and another plant which they have there, something
+like our ginger, but smelling like musk, and tasting like mustard;
+all this was put together, and a small piece of lean mutton boiled
+in it, and this was his worship's repast. Four or five servants
+more attended at a distance, who we supposed were to eat of the
+same after their master. As for our mandarin with whom we
+travelled, he was respected as a king, surrounded always with his
+gentlemen, and attended in all his appearances with such pomp, that
+I saw little of him but at a distance. I observed that there was
+not a horse in his retinue but that our carrier's packhorses in
+England seemed to me to look much better; though it was hard to
+judge rightly, for they were so covered with equipage, mantles,
+trappings, &c., that we could scarce see anything but their feet
+and their heads as they went along.
+
+I was now light-hearted, and all my late trouble and perplexity
+being over, I had no anxious thoughts about me, which made this
+journey the pleasanter to me; in which no ill accident attended me,
+only in passing or fording a small river, my horse fell and made me
+free of the country, as they call it--that is to say, threw me in.
+The place was not deep, but it wetted me all over. I mention it
+because it spoiled my pocket-book, wherein I had set down the names
+of several people and places which I had occasion to remember, and
+which not taking due care of, the leaves rotted, and the words were
+never after to be read.
+
+At length we arrived at Pekin. I had nobody with me but the youth
+whom my nephew had given me to attend me as a servant and who
+proved very trusty and diligent; and my partner had nobody with him
+but one servant, who was a kinsman. As for the Portuguese pilot,
+he being desirous to see the court, we bore his charges for his
+company, and for our use of him as an interpreter, for he
+understood the language of the country, and spoke good French and a
+little English. Indeed, this old man was most useful to us
+everywhere; for we had not been above a week at Pekin, when he came
+laughing. "Ah, Seignior Inglese," says he, "I have something to
+tell will make your heart glad."--"My heart glad," says I; "what
+can that be? I don't know anything in this country can either give
+me joy or grief to any great degree."--"Yes, yes," said the old
+man, in broken English, "make you glad, me sorry."--"Why," said I,
+"will it make you sorry?"--"Because," said he, "you have brought me
+here twenty-five days' journey, and will leave me to go back alone;
+and which way shall I get to my port afterwards, without a ship,
+without a horse, without pecune?" so he called money, being his
+broken Latin, of which he had abundance to make us merry with. In
+short, he told us there was a great caravan of Muscovite and Polish
+merchants in the city, preparing to set out on their journey by
+land to Muscovy, within four or five weeks; and he was sure we
+would take the opportunity to go with them, and leave him behind,
+to go back alone.
+
+I confess I was greatly surprised with this good news, and had
+scarce power to speak to him for some time; but at last I said to
+him, "How do you know this? are you sure it is true?"--"Yes," says
+he; "I met this morning in the street an old acquaintance of mine,
+an Armenian, who is among them. He came last from Astrakhan, and
+was designed to go to Tonquin, where I formerly knew him, but has
+altered his mind, and is now resolved to go with the caravan to
+Moscow, and so down the river Volga to Astrakhan."--"Well,
+Seignior," says I, "do not be uneasy about being left to go back
+alone; if this be a method for my return to England, it shall be
+your fault if you go back to Macao at all." We then went to
+consult together what was to be done; and I asked my partner what
+he thought of the pilot's news, and whether it would suit with his
+affairs? He told me he would do just as I would; for he had
+settled all his affairs so well at Bengal, and left his effects in
+such good hands, that as we had made a good voyage, if he could
+invest it in China silks, wrought and raw, he would be content to
+go to England, and then make a voyage back to Bengal by the
+Company's ships.
+
+Having resolved upon this, we agreed that if our Portuguese pilot
+would go with us, we would bear his charges to Moscow, or to
+England, if he pleased; nor, indeed, were we to be esteemed over-
+generous in that either, if we had not rewarded him further, the
+service he had done us being really worth more than that; for he
+had not only been a pilot to us at sea, but he had been like a
+broker for us on shore; and his procuring for us a Japan merchant
+was some hundreds of pounds in our pockets. So, being willing to
+gratify him, which was but doing him justice, and very willing also
+to have him with us besides, for he was a most necessary man on all
+occasions, we agreed to give him a quantity of coined gold, which,
+as I computed it, was worth one hundred and seventy-five pounds
+sterling, between us, and to bear all his charges, both for himself
+and horse, except only a horse to carry his goods. Having settled
+this between ourselves, we called him to let him know what we had
+resolved. I told him he had complained of our being willing to let
+him go back alone, and I was now about to tell him we designed he
+should not go back at all. That as we had resolved to go to Europe
+with the caravan, we were very willing he should go with us; and
+that we called him to know his mind. He shook his head and said it
+was a long journey, and that he had no pecune to carry him thither,
+or to subsist himself when he came there. We told him we believed
+it was so, and therefore we had resolved to do something for him
+that should let him see how sensible we were of the service he had
+done us, and also how agreeable he was to us: and then I told him
+what we had resolved to give him here, which he might lay out as we
+would do our own; and that as for his charges, if he would go with
+us we would set him safe on shore (life and casualties excepted),
+either in Muscovy or England, as he would choose, at our own
+charge, except only the carriage of his goods. He received the
+proposal like a man transported, and told us he would go with us
+over all the whole world; and so we all prepared for our journey.
+However, as it was with us, so it was with the other merchants:
+they had many things to do, and instead of being ready in five
+weeks, it was four months and some days before all things were got
+together.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV--ATTACKED BY TARTARS
+
+
+
+It was the beginning of February, new style, when we set out from
+Pekin. My partner and the old pilot had gone express back to the
+port where we had first put in, to dispose of some goods which we
+had left there; and I, with a Chinese merchant whom I had some
+knowledge of at Nankin, and who came to Pekin on his own affairs,
+went to Nankin, where I bought ninety pieces of fine damasks, with
+about two hundred pieces of other very fine silk of several sorts,
+some mixed with gold, and had all these brought to Pekin against my
+partner's return. Besides this, we bought a large quantity of raw
+silk, and some other goods, our cargo amounting, in these goods
+only, to about three thousand five hundred pounds sterling; which,
+together with tea and some fine calicoes, and three camels' loads
+of nutmegs and cloves, loaded in all eighteen camels for our share,
+besides those we rode upon; these, with two or three spare horses,
+and two horses loaded with provisions, made together twenty-six
+camels and horses in our retinue.
+
+The company was very great, and, as near as I can remember, made
+between three and four hundred horses, and upwards of one hundred
+and twenty men, very well armed and provided for all events; for as
+the Eastern caravans are subject to be attacked by the Arabs, so
+are these by the Tartars. The company consisted of people of
+several nations, but there were above sixty of them merchants or
+inhabitants of Moscow, though of them some were Livonians; and to
+our particular satisfaction, five of them were Scots, who appeared
+also to be men of great experience in business, and of very good
+substance.
+
+When we had travelled one day's journey, the guides, who were five
+in number, called all the passengers, except the servants, to a
+great council, as they called it. At this council every one
+deposited a certain quantity of money to a common stock, for the
+necessary expense of buying forage on the way, where it was not
+otherwise to be had, and for satisfying the guides, getting horses,
+and the like. Here, too, they constituted the journey, as they
+call it, viz. they named captains and officers to draw us all up,
+and give the word of command, in case of an attack, and give every
+one their turn of command; nor was this forming us into order any
+more than what we afterwards found needful on the way.
+
+The road all on this side of the country is very populous, and is
+full of potters and earth-makers--that is to say, people, that
+temper the earth for the China ware. As I was coming along, our
+Portuguese pilot, who had always something or other to say to make
+us merry, told me he would show me the greatest rarity in all the
+country, and that I should have this to say of China, after all the
+ill-humoured things that I had said of it, that I had seen one
+thing which was not to be seen in all the world beside. I was very
+importunate to know what it was; at last he told me it was a
+gentleman's house built with China ware. "Well," says I, "are not
+the materials of their buildings the products of their own country,
+and so it is all China ware, is it not?"--"No, no," says he, "I
+mean it is a house all made of China ware, such as you call it in
+England, or as it is called in our country, porcelain."--"Well,"
+says I, "such a thing may be; how big is it? Can we carry it in a
+box upon a camel? If we can we will buy it."--"Upon a camel!" says
+the old pilot, holding up both his hands; "why, there is a family
+of thirty people lives in it."
+
+I was then curious, indeed, to see it; and when I came to it, it
+was nothing but this: it was a timber house, or a house built, as
+we call it in England, with lath and plaster, but all this
+plastering was really China ware--that is to say, it was plastered
+with the earth that makes China ware. The outside, which the sun
+shone hot upon, was glazed, and looked very well, perfectly white,
+and painted with blue figures, as the large China ware in England
+is painted, and hard as if it had been burnt. As to the inside,
+all the walls, instead of wainscot, were lined with hardened and
+painted tiles, like the little square tiles we call galley-tiles in
+England, all made of the finest china, and the figures exceeding
+fine indeed, with extraordinary variety of colours, mixed with
+gold, many tiles making but one figure, but joined so artificially,
+the mortar being made of the same earth, that it was very hard to
+see where the tiles met. The floors of the rooms were of the same
+composition, and as hard as the earthen floors we have in use in
+several parts of England; as hard as stone, and smooth, but not
+burnt and painted, except some smaller rooms, like closets, which
+were all, as it were, paved with the same tile; the ceiling and all
+the plastering work in the whole house were of the same earth; and,
+after all, the roof was covered with tiles of the same, but of a
+deep shining black. This was a China warehouse indeed, truly and
+literally to be called so, and had I not been upon the journey, I
+could have stayed some days to see and examine the particulars of
+it. They told me there were fountains and fishponds in the garden,
+all paved on the bottom and sides with the same; and fine statues
+set up in rows on the walks, entirely formed of the porcelain
+earth, burnt whole.
+
+As this is one of the singularities of China, so they may be
+allowed to excel in it; but I am very sure they excel in their
+accounts of it; for they told me such incredible things of their
+performance in crockery-ware, for such it is, that I care not to
+relate, as knowing it could not be true. They told me, in
+particular, of one workman that made a ship with all its tackle and
+masts and sails in earthenware, big enough to carry fifty men. If
+they had told me he launched it, and made a voyage to Japan in it,
+I might have said something to it indeed; but as it was, I knew the
+whole of the story, which was, in short, that the fellow lied: so
+I smiled, and said nothing to it. This odd sight kept me two hours
+behind the caravan, for which the leader of it for the day fined me
+about the value of three shillings; and told me if it had been
+three days' journey without the wall, as it was three days' within,
+he must have fined me four times as much, and made me ask pardon
+the next council-day. I promised to be more orderly; and, indeed,
+I found afterwards the orders made for keeping all together were
+absolutely necessary for our common safety.
+
+In two days more we passed the great China wall, made for a
+fortification against the Tartars: and a very great work it is,
+going over hills and mountains in an endless track, where the rocks
+are impassable, and the precipices such as no enemy could possibly
+enter, or indeed climb up, or where, if they did, no wall could
+hinder them. They tell us its length is near a thousand English
+miles, but that the country is five hundred in a straight measured
+line, which the wall bounds without measuring the windings and
+turnings it takes; it is about four fathoms high, and as many thick
+in some places.
+
+I stood still an hour or thereabouts without trespassing on our
+orders (for so long the caravan was in passing the gate), to look
+at it on every side, near and far off; I mean what was within my
+view: and the guide, who had been extolling it for the wonder of
+the world, was mighty eager to hear my opinion of it. I told him
+it was a most excellent thing to keep out the Tartars; which he
+happened not to understand as I meant it and so took it for a
+compliment; but the old pilot laughed! "Oh, Seignior Inglese,"
+says he, "you speak in colours."--"In colours!" said I; "what do
+you mean by that?"--"Why, you speak what looks white this way and
+black that way--gay one way and dull another. You tell him it is a
+good wall to keep out Tartars; you tell me by that it is good for
+nothing but to keep out Tartars. I understand you, Seignior
+Inglese, I understand you; but Seignior Chinese understood you his
+own way."--"Well," says I, "do you think it would stand out an army
+of our country people, with a good train of artillery; or our
+engineers, with two companies of miners? Would not they batter it
+down in ten days, that an army might enter in battalia; or blow it
+up in the air, foundation and all, that there should be no sign of
+it left?"--"Ay, ay," says he, "I know that." The Chinese wanted
+mightily to know what I said to the pilot, and I gave him leave to
+tell him a few days after, for we were then almost out of their
+country, and he was to leave us a little time after this; but when
+he knew what I said, he was dumb all the rest of the way, and we
+heard no more of his fine story of the Chinese power and greatness
+while he stayed.
+
+After we passed this mighty nothing, called a wall, something like
+the Picts' walls so famous in Northumberland, built by the Romans,
+we began to find the country thinly inhabited, and the people
+rather confined to live in fortified towns, as being subject to the
+inroads and depredations of the Tartars, who rob in great armies,
+and therefore are not to be resisted by the naked inhabitants of an
+open country. And here I began to find the necessity of keeping
+together in a caravan as we travelled, for we saw several troops of
+Tartars roving about; but when I came to see them distinctly, I
+wondered more that the Chinese empire could be conquered by such
+contemptible fellows; for they are a mere horde of wild fellows,
+keeping no order and understanding no discipline or manner of it.
+Their horses are poor lean creatures, taught nothing, and fit for
+nothing; and this we found the first day we saw them, which was
+after we entered the wilder part of the country. Our leader for
+the day gave leave for about sixteen of us to go a hunting as they
+call it; and what was this but a hunting of sheep!--however, it may
+be called hunting too, for these creatures are the wildest and
+swiftest of foot that ever I saw of their kind! only they will not
+run a great way, and you are sure of sport when you begin the
+chase, for they appear generally thirty or forty in a flock, and,
+like true sheep, always keep together when they fly.
+
+In pursuit of this odd sort of game it was our hap to meet with
+about forty Tartars: whether they were hunting mutton, as we were,
+or whether they looked for another kind of prey, we know not; but
+as soon as they saw us, one of them blew a hideous blast on a kind
+of horn. This was to call their friends about them, and in less
+than ten minutes a troop of forty or fifty more appeared, at about
+a mile distance; but our work was over first, as it happened.
+
+One of the Scots merchants of Moscow happened to be amongst us; and
+as soon as he heard the horn, he told us that we had nothing to do
+but to charge them without loss of time; and drawing us up in a
+line, he asked if we were resolved. We told him we were ready to
+follow him; so he rode directly towards them. They stood gazing at
+us like a mere crowd, drawn up in no sort of order at all; but as
+soon as they saw us advance, they let fly their arrows, which
+missed us, very happily. Not that they mistook their aim, but
+their distance; for their arrows all fell a little short of us, but
+with so true an aim, that had we been about twenty yards nearer we
+must have had several men wounded, if not killed.
+
+Immediately we halted, and though it was at a great distance, we
+fired, and sent them leaden bullets for wooden arrows, following
+our shot full gallop, to fall in among them sword in hand--for so
+our bold Scot that led us directed. He was, indeed, but a
+merchant, but he behaved with such vigour and bravery on this
+occasion, and yet with such cool courage too, that I never saw any
+man in action fitter for command. As soon as we came up to them we
+fired our pistols in their faces and then drew; but they fled in
+the greatest confusion imaginable. The only stand any of them made
+was on our right, where three of them stood, and, by signs, called
+the rest to come back to them, having a kind of scimitar in their
+hands, and their bows hanging to their backs. Our brave commander,
+without asking anybody to follow him, gallops up close to them, and
+with his fusee knocks one of them off his horse, killed the second
+with his pistol, and the third ran away. Thus ended our fight; but
+we had this misfortune attending it, that all our mutton we had in
+chase got away. We had not a man killed or hurt; as for the
+Tartars, there were about five of them killed--how many were
+wounded we knew not; but this we knew, that the other party were so
+frightened with the noise of our guns that they fled, and never
+made any attempt upon us.
+
+We were all this while in the Chinese dominions, and therefore the
+Tartars were not so bold as afterwards; but in about five days we
+entered a vast wild desert, which held us three days' and nights'
+march; and we were obliged to carry our water with us in great
+leathern bottles, and to encamp all night, just as I have heard
+they do in the desert of Arabia. I asked our guides whose dominion
+this was in, and they told me this was a kind of border that might
+be called no man's land, being a part of Great Karakathy, or Grand
+Tartary: that, however, it was all reckoned as belonging to China,
+but that there was no care taken here to preserve it from the
+inroads of thieves, and therefore it was reckoned the worst desert
+in the whole march, though we were to go over some much larger.
+
+In passing this frightful wilderness we saw, two or three times,
+little parties of the Tartars, but they seemed to be upon their own
+affairs, and to have no design upon us; and so, like the man who
+met the devil, if they had nothing to say to us, we had nothing to
+say to them: we let them go. Once, however, a party of them came
+so near as to stand and gaze at us. Whether it was to consider if
+they should attack us or not, we knew not; but when we had passed
+at some distance by them, we made a rear-guard of forty men, and
+stood ready for them, letting the caravan pass half a mile or
+thereabouts before us. After a while they marched off, but they
+saluted us with five arrows at their parting, which wounded a horse
+so that it disabled him, and we left him the next day, poor
+creature, in great need of a good farrier. We saw no more arrows
+or Tartars that time.
+
+We travelled near a month after this, the ways not being so good as
+at first, though still in the dominions of the Emperor of China,
+but lay for the most part in the villages, some of which were
+fortified, because of the incursions of the Tartars. When we were
+come to one of these towns (about two days and a half's journey
+before we came to the city of Naum), I wanted to buy a camel, of
+which there are plenty to be sold all the way upon that road, and
+horses also, such as they are, because, so many caravans coming
+that way, they are often wanted. The person that I spoke to to get
+me a camel would have gone and fetched one for me; but I, like a
+fool, must be officious, and go myself along with him; the place
+was about two miles out of the village, where it seems they kept
+the camels and horses feeding under a guard.
+
+I walked it on foot, with my old pilot and a Chinese, being very
+desirous of a little variety. When we came to the place it was a
+low, marshy ground, walled round with stones, piled up dry, without
+mortar or earth among them, like a park, with a little guard of
+Chinese soldiers at the door. Having bought a camel, and agreed
+for the price, I came away, and the Chinese that went with me led
+the camel, when on a sudden came up five Tartars on horseback. Two
+of them seized the fellow and took the camel from him, while the
+other three stepped up to me and my old pilot, seeing us, as it
+were, unarmed, for I had no weapon about me but my sword, which
+could but ill defend me against three horsemen. The first that
+came up stopped short upon my drawing my sword, for they are arrant
+cowards; but a second, coming upon my left, gave me a blow on the
+head, which I never felt till afterwards, and wondered, when I came
+to myself, what was the matter, and where I was, for he laid me
+flat on the ground; but my never-failing old pilot, the Portuguese,
+had a pistol in his pocket, which I knew nothing of, nor the
+Tartars either: if they had, I suppose they would not have
+attacked us, for cowards are always boldest when there is no
+danger. The old man seeing me down, with a bold heart stepped up
+to the fellow that had struck me, and laying hold of his arm with
+one hand, and pulling him down by main force a little towards him,
+with the other shot him into the head, and laid him dead upon the
+spot. He then immediately stepped up to him who had stopped us, as
+I said, and before he could come forward again, made a blow at him
+with a scimitar, which he always wore, but missing the man, struck
+his horse in the side of his head, cut one of the ears off by the
+root, and a great slice down by the side of his face. The poor
+beast, enraged with the wound, was no more to be governed by his
+rider, though the fellow sat well enough too, but away he flew, and
+carried him quite out of the pilot's reach; and at some distance,
+rising upon his hind legs, threw down the Tartar, and fell upon
+him.
+
+In this interval the poor Chinese came in who had lost the camel,
+but he had no weapon; however, seeing the Tartar down, and his
+horse fallen upon him, away he runs to him, and seizing upon an
+ugly weapon he had by his side, something like a pole-axe, he
+wrenched it from him, and made shift to knock his Tartarian brains
+out with it. But my old man had the third Tartar to deal with
+still; and seeing he did not fly, as he expected, nor come on to
+fight him, as he apprehended, but stood stock still, the old man
+stood still too, and fell to work with his tackle to charge his
+pistol again: but as soon as the Tartar saw the pistol away he
+scoured, and left my pilot, my champion I called him afterwards, a
+complete victory.
+
+By this time I was a little recovered. I thought, when I first
+began to wake, that I had been in a sweet sleep; but, as I said
+above, I wondered where I was, how I came upon the ground, and what
+was the matter. A few moments after, as sense returned, I felt
+pain, though I did not know where; so I clapped my hand to my head,
+and took it away bloody; then I felt my head ache: and in a moment
+memory returned, and everything was present to me again. I jumped
+upon my feet instantly, and got hold of my sword, but no enemies
+were in view: I found a Tartar lying dead, and his horse standing
+very quietly by him; and, looking further, I saw my deliverer, who
+had been to see what the Chinese had done, coming back with his
+hanger in his hand. The old man, seeing me on my feet, came
+running to me, and joyfully embraced me, being afraid before that I
+had been killed. Seeing me bloody, he would see how I was hurt;
+but it was not much, only what we call a broken head; neither did I
+afterwards find any great inconvenience from the blow, for it was
+well again in two or three days.
+
+We made no great gain, however, by this victory, for we lost a
+camel and gained a horse. I paid for the lost camel, and sent for
+another; but I did not go to fetch it myself: I had had enough of
+that.
+
+The city of Naum, which we were approaching, is a frontier of the
+Chinese empire, and is fortified in their fashion. We wanted, as I
+have said, above two days' journey of this city when messengers
+were sent express to every part of the road to tell all travellers
+and caravans to halt till they had a guard sent for them; for that
+an unusual body of Tartars, making ten thousand in all, had
+appeared in the way, about thirty miles beyond the city.
+
+This was very bad news to travellers: however, it was carefully
+done of the governor, and we were very glad to hear we should have
+a guard. Accordingly, two days after, we had two hundred soldiers
+sent us from a garrison of the Chinese on our left, and three
+hundred more from the city of Naum, and with these we advanced
+boldly. The three hundred soldiers from Naum marched in our front,
+the two hundred in our rear, and our men on each side of our
+camels, with our baggage and the whole caravan in the centre; in
+this order, and well prepared for battle, we thought ourselves a
+match for the whole ten thousand Mogul Tartars, if they had
+appeared; but the next day, when they did appear, it was quite
+another thing.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV--DESCRIPTION OF AN IDOL, WHICH THEY DESTROY
+
+
+
+Early in the morning, when marching from a little town called
+Changu, we had a river to pass, which we were obliged to ferry;
+and, had the Tartars had any intelligence, then had been the time
+to have attacked us, when the caravan being over, the rear-guard
+was behind; but they did not appear there. About three hours
+after, when we were entered upon a desert of about fifteen or
+sixteen miles over, we knew by a cloud of dust they raised, that
+the enemy was at hand, and presently they came on upon the spur.
+
+Our Chinese guards in the front, who had talked so big the day
+before, began to stagger; and the soldiers frequently looked behind
+them, a certain sign in a soldier that he is just ready to run
+away. My old pilot was of my mind; and being near me, called out,
+"Seignior Inglese, these fellows must be encouraged, or they will
+ruin us all; for if the Tartars come on they will never stand it."-
+-"If am of your mind," said I; "but what must be done?"--"Done?"
+says he, "let fifty of our men advance, and flank them on each
+wing, and encourage them. They will fight like brave fellows in
+brave company; but without this they will every man turn his back."
+Immediately I rode up to our leader and told him, who was exactly
+of our mind; accordingly, fifty of us marched to the right wing,
+and fifty to the left, and the rest made a line of rescue; and so
+we marched, leaving the last two hundred men to make a body of
+themselves, and to guard the camels; only that, if need were, they
+should send a hundred men to assist the last fifty.
+
+At last the Tartars came on, and an innumerable company they were;
+how many we could not tell, but ten thousand, we thought, at the
+least. A party of them came on first, and viewed our posture,
+traversing the ground in the front of our line; and, as we found
+them within gunshot, our leader ordered the two wings to advance
+swiftly, and give them a salvo on each wing with their shot, which
+was done. They then went off, I suppose to give an account of the
+reception they were like to meet with; indeed, that salute cloyed
+their stomachs, for they immediately halted, stood a while to
+consider of it, and wheeling off to the left, they gave over their
+design for that time, which was very agreeable to our
+circumstances.
+
+Two days after we came to the city of Naun, or Naum; we thanked the
+governor for his care of us, and collected to the value of a
+hundred crowns, or thereabouts, which we gave to the soldiers sent
+to guard us; and here we rested one day. This is a garrison
+indeed, and there were nine hundred soldiers kept here; but the
+reason of it was, that formerly the Muscovite frontiers lay nearer
+to them than they now do, the Muscovites having abandoned that part
+of the country, which lies from this city west for about two
+hundred miles, as desolate and unfit for use; and more especially
+being so very remote, and so difficult to send troops thither for
+its defence; for we were yet above two thousand miles from Muscovy
+properly so called. After this we passed several great rivers, and
+two dreadful deserts; one of which we were sixteen days passing
+over; and on the 13th of April we came to the frontiers of the
+Muscovite dominions. I think the first town or fortress, whichever
+it may he called, that belonged to the Czar, was called Arguna,
+being on the west side of the river Arguna.
+
+I could not but feel great satisfaction that I was arrived in a
+country governed by Christians; for though the Muscovites do, in my
+opinion, but just deserve the name of Christians, yet such they
+pretend to be, and are very devout in their way. It would
+certainly occur to any reflecting man who travels the world as I
+have done, what a blessing it is to be brought into the world where
+the name of God and a Redeemer is known, adored, and worshipped;
+and not where the people, given up to strong delusions, worship the
+devil, and prostrate themselves to monsters, elements, horrid-
+shaped animals, and monstrous images. Not a town or city we passed
+through but had their pagodas, their idols, and their temples, and
+ignorant people worshipping even the works of their own hands. Now
+we came where, at least, a face of the Christian worship appeared;
+where the knee was bowed to Jesus: and whether ignorantly or not,
+yet the Christian religion was owned, and the name of the true God
+was called upon and adored; and it made my soul rejoice to see it.
+I saluted the brave Scots merchant with my first acknowledgment of
+this; and taking him by the hand, I said to him, "Blessed be God,
+we are once again amongst Christians." He smiled, and answered,
+"Do not rejoice too soon, countryman; these Muscovites are but an
+odd sort of Christians; and but for the name of it you may see very
+little of the substance for some months further of our journey."--
+"Well," says I, "but still it is better than paganism, and
+worshipping of devils."--"Why, I will tell you," says he; "except
+the Russian soldiers in the garrisons, and a few of the inhabitants
+of the cities upon the road, all the rest of this country, for
+above a thousand miles farther, is inhabited by the worst and most
+ignorant of pagans." And so, indeed, we found it.
+
+We now launched into the greatest piece of solid earth that is to
+be found in any part of the world; we had, at least, twelve
+thousand miles to the sea eastward; two thousand to the bottom of
+the Baltic Sea westward; and above three thousand, if we left that
+sea, and went on west, to the British and French channels: we had
+full five thousand miles to the Indian or Persian Sea south; and
+about eight hundred to the Frozen Sea north.
+
+We advanced from the river Arguna by easy and moderate journeys,
+and were very visibly obliged to the care the Czar has taken to
+have cities and towns built in as many places as it is possible to
+place them, where his soldiers keep garrison, something like the
+stationary soldiers placed by the Romans in the remotest countries
+of their empire; some of which I had read of were placed in
+Britain, for the security of commerce, and for the lodging of
+travellers. Thus it was here; for wherever we came, though at
+these towns and stations the garrisons and governors were Russians,
+and professed Christians, yet the inhabitants were mere pagans,
+sacrificing to idols, and worshipping the sun, moon, and stars, or
+all the host of heaven; and not only so, but were, of all the
+heathens and pagans that ever I met with, the most barbarous,
+except only that they did not eat men's flesh.
+
+Some instances of this we met with in the country between Arguna,
+where we enter the Muscovite dominions, and a city of Tartars and
+Russians together, called Nortziousky, in which is a continued
+desert or forest, which cost us twenty days to travel over. In a
+village near the last of these places I had the curiosity to go and
+see their way of living, which is most brutish and unsufferable.
+They had, I suppose, a great sacrifice that day; for there stood
+out, upon an old stump of a tree, a diabolical kind of idol made of
+wood; it was dressed up, too, in the most filthy manner; its upper
+garment was of sheepskins, with the wool outward; a great Tartar
+bonnet on the head, with two horns growing through it; it was about
+eight feet high, yet had no feet or legs, nor any other proportion
+of parts.
+
+This scarecrow was set up at the outer side of the village; and
+when I came near to it there were sixteen or seventeen creatures
+all lying flat upon the ground round this hideous block of wood; I
+saw no motion among them, any more than if they had been all logs,
+like the idol, and at first I really thought they had been so; but,
+when I came a little nearer, they started up upon their feet, and
+raised a howl, as if it had been so many deep-mouthed hounds, and
+walked away, as if they were displeased at our disturbing them. A
+little way off from the idol, and at the door of a hut, made of
+sheep and cow skins dried, stood three men with long knives in
+their hands; and in the middle of the tent appeared three sheep
+killed, and one young bullock. These, it seems, were sacrifices to
+that senseless log of an idol; the three men were priests belonging
+to it, and the seventeen prostrated wretches were the people who
+brought the offering, and were offering their prayers to that
+stock.
+
+I confess I was more moved at their stupidity and brutish worship
+of a hobgoblin than ever I was at anything in my life, and,
+overcome with rage, I rode up to the hideous idol, and with my
+sword made a stroke at the bonnet that was on its head, and cut it
+in two; and one of our men that was with me, taking hold of the
+sheepskin that covered it, pulled at it, when, behold, a most
+hideous outcry ran through the village, and two or three hundred
+people came about my ears, so that I was glad to scour for it, for
+some had bows and arrows; but I resolved from that moment to visit
+them again. Our caravan rested three nights at the town, which was
+about four miles off, in order to provide some horses which they
+wanted, several of the horses having been lamed and jaded with the
+long march over the last desert; so we had some leisure here to put
+my design in execution. I communicated it to the Scots merchant,
+of whose courage I had sufficient testimony; I told him what I had
+seen, and with what indignation I had since thought that human
+nature could be so degenerate; I told him if I could get but four
+or five men well armed to go with me, I was resolved to go and
+destroy that vile, abominable idol, and let them see that it had no
+power to help itself, and consequently could not be an object of
+worship, or to be prayed to, much less help them that offered
+sacrifices to it.
+
+He at first objected to my plan as useless, seeing that, owing to
+the gross ignorance of the people, they could not be brought to
+profit by the lesson I meant to teach them; and added that, from
+his knowledge of the country and its customs, he feared we should
+fall into great peril by giving offence to these brutal idol
+worshippers. This somewhat stayed my purpose, but I was still
+uneasy all that day to put my project in execution; and that
+evening, meeting the Scots merchant in our walk about the town, I
+again called upon him to aid me in it. When he found me resolute
+he said that, on further thoughts, he could not but applaud the
+design, and told me I should not go alone, but he would go with me;
+but he would go first and bring a stout fellow, one of his
+countrymen, to go also with us; "and one," said he, "as famous for
+his zeal as you can desire any one to be against such devilish
+things as these." So we agreed to go, only we three and my man-
+servant, and resolved to put it in execution the following night
+about midnight, with all possible secrecy.
+
+We thought it better to delay it till the next night, because the
+caravan being to set forward in the morning, we suppose the
+governor could not pretend to give them any satisfaction upon us
+when we were out of his power. The Scots merchant, as steady in
+his resolution for the enterprise as bold in executing, brought me
+a Tartar's robe or gown of sheepskins, and a bonnet, with a bow and
+arrows, and had provided the same for himself and his countryman,
+that the people, if they saw us, should not determine who we were.
+All the first night we spent in mixing up some combustible matter,
+with aqua vitae, gunpowder, and such other materials as we could
+get; and having a good quantity of tar in a little pot, about an
+hour after night we set out upon our expedition.
+
+We came to the place about eleven o'clock at night, and found that
+the people had not the least suspicion of danger attending their
+idol. The night was cloudy: yet the moon gave us light enough to
+see that the idol stood just in the same posture and place that it
+did before. The people seemed to be all at their rest; only that
+in the great hut, where we saw the three priests, we saw a light,
+and going up close to the door, we heard people talking as if there
+were five or six of them; we concluded, therefore, that if we set
+wildfire to the idol, those men would come out immediately, and run
+up to the place to rescue it from destruction; and what to do with
+them we knew not. Once we thought of carrying it away, and setting
+fire to it at a distance; but when we came to handle it, we found
+it too bulky for our carriage, so we were at a loss again. The
+second Scotsman was for setting fire to the hut, and knocking the
+creatures that were there on the head when they came out; but I
+could not join with that; I was against killing them, if it were
+possible to avoid it. "Well, then," said the Scots merchant, "I
+will tell you what we will do: we will try to make them prisoners,
+tie their hands, and make them stand and see their idol destroyed."
+
+As it happened, we had twine or packthread enough about us, which
+we used to tie our firelocks together with; so we resolved to
+attack these people first, and with as little noise as we could.
+The first thing we did, we knocked at the door, when one of the
+priests coming to it, we immediately seized upon him, stopped his
+mouth, and tied his hands behind him, and led him to the idol,
+where we gagged him that he might not make a noise, tied his feet
+also together, and left him on the ground.
+
+Two of us then waited at the door, expecting that another would
+come out to see what the matter was; but we waited so long till the
+third man came back to us; and then nobody coming out, we knocked
+again gently, and immediately out came two more, and we served them
+just in the same manner, but were obliged to go all with them, and
+lay them down by the idol some distance from one another; when,
+going back, we found two more were come out of the door, and a
+third stood behind them within the door. We seized the two, and
+immediately tied them, when the third, stepping back and crying
+out, my Scots merchant went in after them, and taking out a
+composition we had made that would only smoke and stink, he set
+fire to it, and threw it in among them. By that time the other
+Scotsman and my man, taking charge of the two men already bound,
+and tied together also by the arm, led them away to the idol, and
+left them there, to see if their idol would relieve them, making
+haste back to us.
+
+When the fuze we had thrown in had filled the hut with so much
+smoke that they were almost suffocated, we threw in a small leather
+bag of another kind, which flamed like a candle, and, following it
+in, we found there were but four people, who, as we supposed, had
+been about some of their diabolical sacrifices. They appeared, in
+short, frightened to death, at least so as to sit trembling and
+stupid, and not able to speak either, for the smoke.
+
+We quickly took them from the hut, where the smoke soon drove us
+out, bound them as we had done the other, and all without any
+noise. Then we carried them all together to the idol; when we came
+there, we fell to work with him. First, we daubed him all over,
+and his robes also, with tar, and tallow mixed with brimstone; then
+we stopped his eyes and ears and mouth full of gunpowder, and
+wrapped up a great piece of wildfire in his bonnet; then sticking
+all the combustibles we had brought with us upon him, we looked
+about to see if we could find anything else to help to burn him;
+when my Scotsman remembered that by the hut, where the men were,
+there lay a heap of dry forage; away he and the other Scotsman ran
+and fetched their arms full of that. When we had done this, we
+took all our prisoners, and brought them, having untied their feet
+and ungagged their mouths, and made them stand up, and set them
+before their monstrous idol, and then set fire to the whole.
+
+We stayed by it a quarter of an hour or thereabouts, till the
+powder in the eyes and mouth and ears of the idol blew up, and, as
+we could perceive, had split altogether; and in a word, till we saw
+it burned so that it would soon be quite consumed. We then began
+to think of going away; but the Scotsman said, "No, we must not go,
+for these poor deluded wretches will all throw themselves into the
+fire, and burn themselves with the idol." So we resolved to stay
+till the forage has burned down too, and then came away and left
+them. After the feat was performed, we appeared in the morning
+among our fellow-travellers, exceedingly busy in getting ready for
+our journey; nor could any man suppose that we had been anywhere
+but in our beds.
+
+But the affair did not end so; the next day came a great number of
+the country people to the town gates, and in a most outrageous
+manner demanded satisfaction of the Russian governor for the
+insulting their priests and burning their great Cham Chi-Thaungu.
+The people of Nertsinkay were at first in a great consternation,
+for they said the Tartars were already no less than thirty thousand
+strong. The Russian governor sent out messengers to appease them,
+assuring them that he knew nothing of it, and that there had not a
+soul in his garrison been abroad, so that it could not be from
+anybody there: but if they could let him know who did it, they
+should be exemplarily punished. They returned haughtily, that all
+the country reverenced the great Cham Chi-Thaungu, who dwelt in the
+sun, and no mortal would have dared to offer violence to his image
+but some Christian miscreant; and they therefore resolved to
+denounce war against him and all the Russians, who, they said, were
+miscreants and Christians.
+
+The governor, unwilling to make a breach, or to have any cause of
+war alleged to be given by him, the Czar having strictly charged
+him to treat the conquered country with gentleness, gave them all
+the good words he could. At last he told them there was a caravan
+gone towards Russia that morning, and perhaps it was some of them
+who had done them this injury; and that if they would be satisfied
+with that, he would send after them to inquire into it. This
+seemed to appease them a little; and accordingly the governor sent
+after us, and gave us a particular account how the thing was;
+intimating withal, that if any in our caravan had done it they
+should make their escape; but that whether we had done it or no, we
+should make all the haste forward that was possible: and that, in
+the meantime, he would keep them in play as long as he could.
+
+This was very friendly in the governor; however, when it came to
+the caravan, there was nobody knew anything of the matter; and as
+for us that were guilty, we were least of all suspected. However,
+the captain of the caravan for the time took the hint that the
+governor gave us, and we travelled two days and two nights without
+any considerable stop, and then we lay at a village called Plothus:
+nor did we make any long stop here, but hastened on towards
+Jarawena, another Muscovite colony, and where we expected we should
+be safe. But upon the second day's march from Plothus, by the
+clouds of dust behind us at a great distance, it was plain we were
+pursued. We had entered a vast desert, and had passed by a great
+lake called Schanks Oser, when we perceived a large body of horse
+appear on the other side of the lake, to the north, we travelling
+west. We observed they went away west, as we did, but had supposed
+we would have taken that side of the lake, whereas we very happily
+took the south side; and in two days more they disappeared again:
+for they, believing we were still before them, pushed on till they
+came to the Udda, a very great river when it passes farther north,
+but when we came to it we found it narrow and fordable.
+
+The third day they had either found their mistake, or had
+intelligence of us, and came pouring in upon us towards dusk. We
+had, to our great satisfaction, just pitched upon a convenient
+place for our camp; for as we had just entered upon a desert above
+five hundred miles over, where we had no towns to lodge at, and,
+indeed, expected none but the city Jarawena, which we had yet two
+days' march to; the desert, however, had some few woods in it on
+this side, and little rivers, which ran all into the great river
+Udda; it was in a narrow strait, between little but very thick
+woods, that we pitched our camp that night, expecting to be
+attacked before morning. As it was usual for the Mogul Tartars to
+go about in troops in that desert, so the caravans always fortify
+themselves every night against them, as against armies of robbers;
+and it was, therefore, no new thing to be pursued. But we had this
+night a most advantageous camp: for as we lay between two woods,
+with a little rivulet running just before our front, we could not
+be surrounded, or attacked any way but in our front or rear. We
+took care also to make our front as strong as we could, by placing
+our packs, with the camels and horses, all in a line, on the inside
+of the river, and felling some trees in our rear.
+
+In this posture we encamped for the night; but the enemy was upon
+us before we had finished. They did not come on like thieves, as
+we expected, but sent three messengers to us, to demand the men to
+be delivered to them that had abused their priests and burned their
+idol, that they might burn them with fire; and upon this, they
+said, they would go away, and do us no further harm, otherwise they
+would destroy us all. Our men looked very blank at this message,
+and began to stare at one another to see who looked with the most
+guilt in their faces; but nobody was the word--nobody did it. The
+leader of the caravan sent word he was well assured that it was not
+done by any of our camp; that we were peaceful merchants,
+travelling on our business; that we had done no harm to them or to
+any one else; and that, therefore, they must look further for the
+enemies who had injured them, for we were not the people; so they
+desired them not to disturb us, for if they did we should defend
+ourselves.
+
+They were far from being satisfied with this for an answer: and a
+great crowd of them came running down in the morning, by break of
+day, to our camp; but seeing us so well posted, they durst come no
+farther than the brook in our front, where they stood in such
+number as to terrify us very much; indeed, some spoke of ten
+thousand. Here they stood and looked at us a while, and then,
+setting up a great howl, let fly a crowd of arrows among us; but we
+were well enough sheltered under our baggage, and I do not remember
+that one of us was hurt.
+
+Some time after this we saw them move a little to our right, and
+expected them on the rear: when a cunning fellow, a Cossack of
+Jarawena, calling to the leader of the caravan, said to him, "I
+will send all these people away to Sibeilka." This was a city four
+or five days' journey at least to the right, and rather behind us.
+So he takes his bow and arrows, and getting on horseback, he rides
+away from our rear directly, as it were back to Nertsinskay; after
+this he takes a great circuit about, and comes directly on the army
+of the Tartars as if he had been sent express to tell them a long
+story that the people who had burned the Cham Chi-Thaungu were gone
+to Sibeilka, with a caravan of miscreants, as he called them--that
+is to say, Christians; and that they had resolved to burn the god
+Scal-Isar, belonging to the Tonguses. As this fellow was himself a
+Tartar, and perfectly spoke their language, he counterfeited so
+well that they all believed him, and away they drove in a violent
+hurry to Sibeilka. In less than three hours they were entirely out
+of our sight, and we never heard any more of them, nor whether they
+went to Sibeilka or no. So we passed away safely on to Jarawena,
+where there was a Russian garrison, and there we rested five days.
+
+From this city we had a frightful desert, which held us twenty-
+three days' march. We furnished ourselves with some tents here,
+for the better accommodating ourselves in the night; and the leader
+of the caravan procured sixteen waggons of the country, for
+carrying our water or provisions, and these carriages were our
+defence every night round our little camp; so that had the Tartars
+appeared, unless they had been very numerous indeed, they would not
+have been able to hurt us. We may well be supposed to have wanted
+rest again after this long journey; for in this desert we neither
+saw house nor tree, and scarce a bush; though we saw abundance of
+the sable-hunters, who are all Tartars of Mogul Tartary; of which
+this country is a part; and they frequently attack small caravans,
+but we saw no numbers of them together.
+
+After we had passed this desert we came into a country pretty well
+inhabited--that is to say, we found towns and castles, settled by
+the Czar with garrisons of stationary soldiers, to protect the
+caravans and defend the country against the Tartars, who would
+otherwise make it very dangerous travelling; and his czarish
+majesty has given such strict orders for the well guarding the
+caravans, that, if there are any Tartars heard of in the country,
+detachments of the garrison are always sent to see the travellers
+safe from station to station. Thus the governor of Adinskoy, whom
+I had an opportunity to make a visit to, by means of the Scots
+merchant, who was acquainted with him, offered us a guard of fifty
+men, if we thought there was any danger, to the next station.
+
+I thought, long before this, that as we came nearer to Europe we
+should find the country better inhabited, and the people more
+civilised; but I found myself mistaken in both: for we had yet the
+nation of the Tonguses to pass through, where we saw the same
+tokens of paganism and barbarity as before; only, as they were
+conquered by the Muscovites, they were not so dangerous, but for
+rudeness of manners and idolatry no people in the world ever went
+beyond them. They are all clothed in skins of beasts, and their
+houses are built of the same; you know not a man from a woman,
+neither by the ruggedness of their countenances nor their clothes;
+and in the winter, when the ground is covered with snow, they live
+underground in vaults, which have cavities going from one to
+another. If the Tartars had their Cham Chi-Thaungu for a whole
+village or country, these had idols in every hut and every cave.
+This country, I reckon, was, from the desert I spoke of last, at
+least four hundred miles, half of it being another desert, which
+took us up twelve days' severe travelling, without house or tree;
+and we were obliged again to carry our own provisions, as well
+water as bread. After we were out of this desert and had travelled
+two days, we came to Janezay, a Muscovite city or station, on the
+great river Janezay, which, they told us there, parted Europe from
+Asia.
+
+All the country between the river Oby and the river Janezay is as
+entirely pagan, and the people as barbarous, as the remotest of the
+Tartars. I also found, which I observed to the Muscovite governors
+whom I had an opportunity to converse with, that the poor pagans
+are not much wiser, or nearer Christianity, for being under the
+Muscovite government, which they acknowledged was true enough--but
+that, as they said, was none of their business; that if the Czar
+expected to convert his Siberian, Tonguse, or Tartar subjects, it
+should be done by sending clergymen among them, not soldiers; and
+they added, with more sincerity than I expected, that it was not so
+much the concern of their monarch to make the people Christians as
+to make them subjects.
+
+From this river to the Oby we crossed a wild uncultivated country,
+barren of people and good management, otherwise it is in itself a
+pleasant, fruitful, and agreeable country. What inhabitants we
+found in it are all pagans, except such as are sent among them from
+Russia; for this is the country--I mean on both sides the river
+Oby--whither the Muscovite criminals that are not put to death are
+banished, and from whence it is next to impossible they should ever
+get away. I have nothing material to say of my particular affairs
+till I came to Tobolski, the capital city of Siberia, where I
+continued some time on the following account.
+
+We had now been almost seven months on our journey, and winter
+began to come on apace; whereupon my partner and I called a council
+about our particular affairs, in which we found it proper, as we
+were bound for England, to consider how to dispose of ourselves.
+They told us of sledges and reindeer to carry us over the snow in
+the winter time, by which means, indeed, the Russians travel more
+in winter than they can in summer, as in these sledges they are
+able to run night and day: the snow, being frozen, is one
+universal covering to nature, by which the hills, vales, rivers,
+and lakes are all smooth and hard is a stone, and they run upon the
+surface, without any regard to what is underneath.
+
+But I had no occasion to urge a winter journey of this kind. I was
+bound to England, not to Moscow, and my route lay two ways: either
+I must go on as the caravan went, till I came to Jarislaw, and then
+go off west for Narva and the Gulf of Finland, and so on to
+Dantzic, where I might possibly sell my China cargo to good
+advantage; or I must leave the caravan at a little town on the
+Dwina, from whence I had but six days by water to Archangel, and
+from thence might be sure of shipping either to England, Holland,
+or Hamburg.
+
+Now, to go any one of these journeys in the winter would have been
+preposterous; for as to Dantzic, the Baltic would have been frozen
+up and I could not get passage; and to go by land in those
+countries was far less safe than among the Mogul Tartars; likewise,
+as to Archangel in October, all the ships would be gone from
+thence, and even the merchants who dwell there in summer retire
+south to Moscow in the winter, when the ships are gone; so that I
+could have nothing but extremity of cold to encounter, with a
+scarcity of provisions, and must lie in an empty town all the
+winter. Therefore, upon the whole, I thought it much my better way
+to let the caravan go, and make provision to winter where I was, at
+Tobolski, in Siberia, in the latitude of about sixty degrees, where
+I was sure of three things to wear out a cold winter with, viz.
+plenty of provisions, such as the country afforded, a warm house,
+with fuel enough, and excellent company.
+
+I was now in quite a different climate from my beloved island,
+where I never felt cold, except when I had my ague; on the
+contrary, I had much to do to bear any clothes on my back, and
+never made any fire but without doors, which was necessary for
+dressing my food, &c. Now I had three good vests, with large robes
+or gowns over them, to hang down to the feet, and button close to
+the wrists; and all these lined with furs, to make them
+sufficiently warm. As to a warm house, I must confess I greatly
+dislike our way in England of making fires in every room of the
+house in open chimneys, which, when the fire is out, always keeps
+the air in the room cold as the climate. So I took an apartment in
+a good house in the town, and ordered a chimney to be built like a
+furnace, in the centre of six several rooms, like a stove; the
+funnel to carry the smoke went up one way, the door to come at the
+fire went in another, and all the rooms were kept equally warm, but
+no fire seen, just as they heat baths in England. By this means we
+had always the same climate in all the rooms, and an equal heat was
+preserved, and yet we saw no fire, nor were ever incommoded with
+smoke.
+
+The most wonderful thing of all was, that it should be possible to
+meet with good company here, in a country so barbarous as this--one
+of the most northerly parts of Europe. But this being the country
+where the state criminals of Muscovy, as I observed before, are all
+banished, the city was full of Russian noblemen, gentlemen,
+soldiers, and courtiers. Here was the famous Prince Galitzin, the
+old German Robostiski, and several other persons of note, and some
+ladies. By means of my Scotch merchant, whom, nevertheless, I
+parted with here, I made an acquaintance with several of these
+gentlemen; and from these, in the long winter nights in which I
+stayed here, I received several very agreeable visits.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI--SAFE ARRIVAL IN ENGLAND
+
+
+
+It was talking one night with a certain prince, one of the banished
+ministers of state belonging to the Czar, that the discourse of my
+particular case began. He had been telling me abundance of fine
+things of the greatness, the magnificence, the dominions, and the
+absolute power of the Emperor of the Russians: I interrupted him,
+and told him I was a greater and more powerful prince than ever the
+Czar was, though my dominion were not so large, or my people so
+many. The Russian grandee looked a little surprised, and, fixing
+his eyes steadily upon me, began to wonder what I meant. I said
+his wonder would cease when I had explained myself, and told him
+the story at large of my living in the island; and then how I
+managed both myself and the people that were under me, just as I
+have since minuted it down. They were exceedingly taken with the
+story, and especially the prince, who told me, with a sigh, that
+the true greatness of life was to be masters of ourselves; that he
+would not have exchanged such a state of life as mine to be Czar of
+Muscovy; and that he found more felicity in the retirement he
+seemed to be banished to there, than ever he found in the highest
+authority he enjoyed in the court of his master the Czar; that the
+height of human wisdom was to bring our tempers down to our
+circumstances, and to make a calm within, under the weight of the
+greatest storms without. When he came first hither, he said, he
+used to tear the hair from his head, and the clothes from his back,
+as others had done before him; but a little time and consideration
+had made him look into himself, as well as round him to things
+without; that he found the mind of man, if it was but once brought
+to reflect upon the state of universal life, and how little this
+world was concerned in its true felicity, was perfectly capable of
+making a felicity for itself, fully satisfying to itself, and
+suitable to its own best ends and desires, with but very little
+assistance from the world. That being now deprived of all the
+fancied felicity which he enjoyed in the full exercise of worldly
+pleasures, he said he was at leisure to look upon the dark side of
+them, where he found all manner of deformity; and was now convinced
+that virtue only makes a man truly wise, rich, and great, and
+preserves him in the way to a superior happiness in a future state;
+and in this, he said, they were more happy in their banishment than
+all their enemies were, who had the full possession of all the
+wealth and power they had left behind them. "Nor, sir," says he,
+"do I bring my mind to this politically, from the necessity of my
+circumstances, which some call miserable; but, if I know anything
+of myself, I would not now go back, though the Czar my master
+should call me, and reinstate me in all my former grandeur."
+
+He spoke this with so much warmth in his temper, so much
+earnestness and motion of his spirits, that it was evident it was
+the true sense of his soul; there was no room to doubt his
+sincerity. I told him I once thought myself a kind of monarch in
+my old station, of which I had given him an account; but that I
+thought he was not only a monarch, but a great conqueror; for he
+that had got a victory over his own exorbitant desires, and the
+absolute dominion over himself, he whose reason entirely governs
+his will, is certainly greater than he that conquers a city.
+
+I had been here eight months, and a dark, dreadful winter I thought
+it; the cold so intense that I could not so much as look abroad
+without being wrapped in furs, and a kind of mask of fur before my
+face, with only a hole for breath, and two for sight: the little
+daylight we had was for three months not above five hours a day,
+and six at most; only that the snow lying on the ground
+continually, and the weather being clear, it was never quite dark.
+Our horses were kept, or rather starved, underground; and as for
+our servants, whom we hired here to look after ourselves and
+horses, we had, every now and then, their fingers and toes to thaw
+and take care of, lest they should mortify and fall off.
+
+It is true, within doors we were warm, the houses being close, the
+walls thick, the windows small, and the glass all double. Our food
+was chiefly the flesh of deer, dried and cured in the season; bread
+good enough, but baked as biscuits; dried fish of several sorts,
+and some flesh of mutton, and of buffaloes, which is pretty good
+meat. All the stores of provisions for the winter are laid up in
+the summer, and well cured: our drink was water, mixed with aqua
+vitae instead of brandy; and for a treat, mead instead of wine,
+which, however, they have very good. The hunters, who venture
+abroad all weathers, frequently brought us in fine venison, and
+sometimes bear's flesh, but we did not much care for the last. We
+had a good stock of tea, with which we treated our friends, and we
+lived cheerfully and well, all things considered.
+
+It was now March, the days grown considerably longer, and the
+weather at least tolerable; so the other travellers began to
+prepare sledges to carry them over the snow, and to get things
+ready to be going; but my measures being fixed, as I have said, for
+Archangel, and not for Muscovy or the Baltic, I made no motion;
+knowing very well that the ships from the south do not set out for
+that part of the world till May or June, and that if I was there by
+the beginning of August, it would be as soon as any ships would be
+ready to sail. Therefore I made no haste to be gone, as others
+did: in a word, I saw a great many people, nay, all the
+travellers, go away before me. It seems every year they go from
+thence to Muscovy, for trade, to carry furs, and buy necessaries,
+which they bring back with them to furnish their shops: also
+others went on the same errand to Archangel.
+
+In the month of May I began to make all ready to pack up; and, as I
+was doing this, it occurred to me that, seeing all these people
+were banished by the Czar to Siberia, and yet, when they came
+there, were left at liberty to go whither they would, why they did
+not then go away to any part of the world, wherever they thought
+fit: and I began to examine what should hinder them from making
+such an attempt. But my wonder was over when I entered upon that
+subject with the person I have mentioned, who answered me thus:
+"Consider, first, sir," said he, "the place where we are; and,
+secondly, the condition we are in; especially the generality of the
+people who are banished thither. We are surrounded with stronger
+things than bars or bolts; on the north side, an unnavigable ocean,
+where ship never sailed, and boat never swam; every other way we
+have above a thousand miles to pass through the Czar's own
+dominion, and by ways utterly impassable, except by the roads made
+by the government, and through the towns garrisoned by his troops;
+in short, we could neither pass undiscovered by the road, nor
+subsist any other way, so that it is in vain to attempt it."
+
+I was silenced at once, and found that they were in a prison every
+jot as secure as if they had been locked up in the castle at
+Moscow: however, it came into my thoughts that I might certainly
+be made an instrument to procure the escape of this excellent
+person; and that, whatever hazard I ran, I would certainly try if I
+could carry him off. Upon this, I took an occasion one evening to
+tell him my thoughts. I represented to him that it was very easy
+for me to carry him away, there being no guard over him in the
+country; and as I was not going to Moscow, but to Archangel, and
+that I went in the retinue of a caravan, by which I was not obliged
+to lie in the stationary towns in the desert, but could encamp
+every night where I would, we might easily pass uninterrupted to
+Archangel, where I would immediately secure him on board an English
+ship, and carry him safe along with me; and as to his subsistence
+and other particulars, it should be my care till he could better
+supply himself.
+
+He heard me very attentively, and looked earnestly on me all the
+while I spoke; nay, I could see in his very face that what I said
+put his spirits into an exceeding ferment; his colour frequently
+changed, his eyes looked red, and his heart fluttered, till it
+might be even perceived in his countenance; nor could he
+immediately answer me when I had done, and, as it were, hesitated
+what he would say to it; but after he had paused a little, he
+embraced me, and said, "How unhappy are we, unguarded creatures as
+we are, that even our greatest acts of friendship are made snares
+unto us, and we are made tempters of one another!" He then
+heartily thanked me for my offers of service, but withstood
+resolutely the arguments I used to urge him to set himself free.
+He declared, in earnest terms, that he was fully bent on remaining
+where he was rather than seek to return to his former miserable
+greatness, as he called it: where the seeds of pride, ambition,
+avarice, and luxury might revive, take root, and again overwhelm
+him. "Let me remain, dear sir," he said, in conclusion--"let me
+remain in this blessed confinement, banished from the crimes of
+life, rather than purchase a show of freedom at the expense of the
+liberty of my reason, and at the future happiness which I now have
+in my view, but should then, I fear, quickly lose sight of; for I
+am but flesh; a man, a mere man; and have passions and affections
+as likely to possess and overthrow me as any man: Oh, be not my
+friend and tempter both together!"
+
+If I was surprised before, I was quite dumb now, and stood silent,
+looking at him, and, indeed, admiring what I saw. The struggle in
+his soul was so great that, though the weather was extremely cold,
+it put him into a most violent heat; so I said a word or two, that
+I would leave him to consider of it, and wait on him again, and
+then I withdrew to my own apartment.
+
+About two hours after I heard somebody at or near the door of my
+room, and I was going to open the door, but he had opened it and
+come in. "My dear friend," says he, "you had almost overset me,
+but I am recovered. Do not take it ill that I do not close with
+your offer. I assure you it is not for want of sense of the
+kindness of it in you; and I came to make the most sincere
+acknowledgment of it to you; but I hope I have got the victory over
+myself."--"My lord," said I, "I hope you are fully satisfied that
+you do not resist the call of Heaven."--"Sir," said he, "if it had
+been from Heaven, the same power would have influenced me to have
+accepted it; but I hope, and am fully satisfied, that it is from
+Heaven that I decline it, and I have infinite satisfaction in the
+parting, that you shall leave me an honest man still, though not a
+free man."
+
+I had nothing to do but to acquiesce, and make professions to him
+of my having no end in it but a sincere desire to serve him. He
+embraced me very passionately, and assured me he was sensible of
+that, and should always acknowledge it; and with that he offered me
+a very fine present of sables--too much, indeed, for me to accept
+from a man in his circumstances, and I would have avoided them, but
+he would not be refused. The next morning I sent my servant to his
+lordship with a small present of tea, and two pieces of China
+damask, and four little wedges of Japan gold, which did not all
+weigh above six ounces or thereabouts, but were far short of the
+value of his sables, which, when I came to England, I found worth
+near two hundred pounds. He accepted the tea, and one piece of the
+damask, and one of the pieces of gold, which had a fine stamp upon
+it, of the Japan coinage, which I found he took for the rarity of
+it, but would not take any more: and he sent word by my servant
+that he desired to speak with me.
+
+When I came to him he told me I knew what had passed between us,
+and hoped I would not move him any more in that affair; but that,
+since I had made such a generous offer to him, he asked me if I had
+kindness enough to offer the same to another person that he would
+name to me, in whom he had a great share of concern. In a word, he
+told me it was his only son; who, though I had not seen him, was in
+the same condition with himself, and above two hundred miles from
+him, on the other side of the Oby; but that, if I consented, he
+would send for him.
+
+I made no hesitation, but told him I would do it. I made some
+ceremony in letting him understand that it was wholly on his
+account; and that, seeing I could not prevail on him, I would show
+my respect to him by my concern for his son. He sent the next day
+for his son; and in about twenty days he came back with the
+messenger, bringing six or seven horses, loaded with very rich
+furs, which, in the whole, amounted to a very great value. His
+servants brought the horses into the town, but left the young lord
+at a distance till night, when he came incognito into our
+apartment, and his father presented him to me; and, in short, we
+concerted the manner of our travelling, and everything proper for
+the journey.
+
+I had bought a considerable quantity of sables, black fox-skins,
+fine ermines, and such other furs as are very rich in that city, in
+exchange for some of the goods I had brought from China; in
+particular for the cloves and nutmegs, of which I sold the greatest
+part here, and the rest afterwards at Archangel, for a much better
+price than I could have got at London; and my partner, who was
+sensible of the profit, and whose business, more particularly than
+mine, was merchandise, was mightily pleased with our stay, on
+account of the traffic we made here.
+
+It was the beginning of June when I left this remote place. We
+were now reduced to a very small caravan, having only thirty-two
+horses and camels in all, which passed for mine, though my new
+guest was proprietor of eleven of them. It was natural also that I
+should take more servants with me than I had before; and the young
+lord passed for my steward; what great man I passed for myself I
+know not, neither did it concern me to inquire. We had here the
+worst and the largest desert to pass over that we met with in our
+whole journey; I call it the worst, because the way was very deep
+in some places, and very uneven in others; the best we had to say
+for it was, that we thought we had no troops of Tartars or robbers
+to fear, as they never came on this side of the river Oby, or at
+least very seldom; but we found it otherwise.
+
+My young lord had a faithful Siberian servant, who was perfectly
+acquainted with the country, and led us by private roads, so that
+we avoided coming into the principal towns and cities upon the
+great road, such as Tumen, Soloy Kamaskoy, and several others;
+because the Muscovite garrisons which are kept there are very
+curious and strict in their observation upon travellers, and
+searching lest any of the banished persons of note should make
+their escape that way into Muscovy; but, by this means, as we were
+kept out of the cities, so our whole journey was a desert, and we
+were obliged to encamp and lie in our tents, when we might have had
+very good accommodation in the cities on the way; this the young
+lord was so sensible of, that he would not allow us to lie abroad
+when we came to several cities on the way, but lay abroad himself,
+with his servant, in the woods, and met us always at the appointed
+places.
+
+We had just entered Europe, having passed the river Kama, which in
+these parts is the boundary between Europe and Asia, and the first
+city on the European side was called Soloy Kamaskoy, that is, the
+great city on the river Kama. And here we thought to see some
+evident alteration in the people; but we were mistaken, for as we
+had a vast desert to pass, which is near seven hundred miles long
+in some places, but not above two hundred miles over where we
+passed it, so, till we came past that horrible place, we found very
+little difference between that country and Mogul Tartary. The
+people are mostly pagans; their houses and towns full of idols; and
+their way of living wholly barbarous, except in the cities and
+villages near them, where they are Christians, as they call
+themselves, of the Greek Church: but have their religion mingled
+with so many relics of superstition, that it is scarce to be known
+in some places from mere sorcery and witchcraft.
+
+In passing this forest (after all our dangers were, to our
+imagination, escaped), I thought, indeed, we must have been
+plundered and robbed, and perhaps murdered, by a troop of thieves:
+of what country they were I am yet at a loss to know; but they were
+all on horseback, carried bows and arrows, and were at first about
+forty-five in number. They came so near to us as to be within two
+musket-shot, and, asking no questions, surrounded us with their
+horses, and looked very earnestly upon us twice; at length, they
+placed themselves just in our way; upon which we drew up in a
+little line, before our camels, being not above sixteen men in all.
+Thus drawn up, we halted, and sent out the Siberian servant, who
+attended his lord, to see who they were; his master was the more
+willing to let him go, because he was not a little apprehensive
+that they were a Siberian troop sent out after him. The man came
+up near them with a flag of truce, and called to them; but though
+he spoke several of their languages, or dialects of languages
+rather, he could not understand a word they said; however, after
+some signs to him not to come near them at his peril, the fellow
+came back no wiser than he went; only that by their dress, he said,
+he believed them to be some Tartars of Kalmuck, or of the
+Circassian hordes, and that there must be more of them upon the
+great desert, though he never heard that any of them were seen so
+far north before.
+
+This was small comfort to us; however, we had no remedy: there was
+on our left hand, at about a quarter of a mile distance, a little
+grove, and very near the road. I immediately resolved we should
+advance to those trees, and fortify ourselves as well as we could
+there; for, first, I considered that the trees would in a great
+measure cover us from their arrows; and, in the next place, they
+could not come to charge us in a body: it was, indeed, my old
+Portuguese pilot who proposed it, and who had this excellency
+attending him, that he was always readiest and most apt to direct
+and encourage us in cases of the most danger. We advanced
+immediately, with what speed we could, and gained that little wood;
+the Tartars, or thieves, for we knew not what to call them, keeping
+their stand, and not attempting to hinder us. When we came
+thither, we found, to our great satisfaction, that it was a swampy
+piece of ground, and on the one side a very great spring of water,
+which, running out in a little brook, was a little farther joined
+by another of the like size; and was, in short, the source of a
+considerable river, called afterwards the Wirtska; the trees which
+grew about this spring were not above two hundred, but very large,
+and stood pretty thick, so that as soon as we got in, we saw
+ourselves perfectly safe from the enemy unless they attacked us on
+foot.
+
+While we stayed here waiting the motion of the enemy some hours,
+without perceiving that they made any movement, our Portuguese,
+with some help, cut several arms of trees half off, and laid them
+hanging across from one tree to another, and in a manner fenced us
+in. About two hours before night they came down directly upon us;
+and though we had not perceived it, we found they had been joined
+by some more, so that they were near fourscore horse; whereof,
+however, we fancied some were women. They came on till they were
+within half-shot of our little wood, when we fired one musket
+without ball, and called to them in the Russian tongue to know what
+they wanted, and bade them keep off; but they came on with a double
+fury up to the wood-side, not imagining we were so barricaded that
+they could not easily break in. Our old pilot was our captain as
+well as our engineer, and desired us not to fire upon them till
+they came within pistol-shot, that we might be sure to kill, and
+that when we did fire we should be sure to take good aim; we bade
+him give the word of command, which he delayed so long that they
+were some of them within two pikes' length of us when we let fly.
+We aimed so true that we killed fourteen of them, and wounded
+several others, as also several of their horses; for we had all of
+us loaded our pieces with two or three bullets apiece at least.
+
+They were terribly surprised with our fire, and retreated
+immediately about one hundred rods from us; in which time we loaded
+our pieces again, and seeing them keep that distance, we sallied
+out, and caught four or five of their horses, whose riders we
+supposed were killed; and coming up to the dead, we judged they
+were Tartars, but knew not how they came to make an excursion such
+an unusual length.
+
+About an hour after they again made a motion to attack us, and rode
+round our little wood to see where they might break in; but finding
+us always ready to face them, they went off again; and we resolved
+not to stir for that night.
+
+We slept little, but spent the most part of the night in
+strengthening our situation, and barricading the entrances into the
+wood, and keeping a strict watch. We waited for daylight, and when
+it came, it gave us a very unwelcome discovery indeed; for the
+enemy, who we thought were discouraged with the reception they met
+with, were now greatly increased, and had set up eleven or twelve
+huts or tents, as if they were resolved to besiege us; and this
+little camp they had pitched upon the open plain, about three-
+quarters of a mile from us. I confess I now gave myself over for
+lost, and all that I had; the loss of my effects did not lie so
+near me, though very considerable, as the thoughts of falling into
+the hands of such barbarians at the latter end of my journey, after
+so many difficulties and hazards as I had gone through, and even in
+sight of our port, where we expected safety and deliverance. As to
+my partner, he was raging, and declared that to lose his goods
+would be his ruin, and that he would rather die than be starved,
+and he was for fighting to the last drop.
+
+The young lord, a most gallant youth, was for fighting to the last
+also; and my old pilot was of opinion that we were able to resist
+them all in the situation we were then in. Thus we spent the day
+in debates of what we should do; but towards evening we found that
+the number of our enemies still increased, and we did not know but
+by the morning they might still be a greater number: so I began to
+inquire of those people we had brought from Tobolski if there were
+no private ways by which we might avoid them in the night, and
+perhaps retreat to some town, or get help to guard us over the
+desert. The young lord's Siberian servant told us, if we designed
+to avoid them, and not fight, he would engage to carry us off in
+the night, to a way that went north, towards the river Petruz, by
+which he made no question but we might get away, and the Tartars
+never discover it; but, he said, his lord had told him he would not
+retreat, but would rather choose to fight. I told him he mistook
+his lord: for that he was too wise a man to love fighting for the
+sake of it; that I knew he was brave enough by what he had showed
+already; but that he knew better than to desire seventeen or
+eighteen men to fight five hundred, unless an unavoidable necessity
+forced them to it; and that if he thought it possible for us to
+escape in the night, we had nothing else to do but to attempt it.
+He answered, if his lordship gave him such orders, he would lose
+his life if he did not perform it; we soon brought his lord to give
+that order, though privately, and we immediately prepared for
+putting it in practice.
+
+And first, as soon as it began to be dark, we kindled a fire in our
+little camp, which we kept burning, and prepared so as to make it
+burn all night, that the Tartars might conclude we were still
+there; but as soon as it was dark, and we could see the stars (for
+our guide would not stir before), having all our horses and camels
+ready loaded, we followed our new guide, who I soon found steered
+himself by the north star, the country being level for a long way.
+
+After we had travelled two hours very hard, it began to be lighter
+still; not that it was dark all night, but the moon began to rise,
+so that, in short, it was rather lighter than we wished it to be;
+but by six o'clock the next morning we had got above thirty miles,
+having almost spoiled our horses. Here we found a Russian village,
+named Kermazinskoy, where we rested, and heard nothing of the
+Kalmuck Tartars that day. About two hours before night we set out
+again, and travelled till eight the next morning, though not quite
+so hard as before; and about seven o'clock we passed a little
+river, called Kirtza, and came to a good large town inhabited by
+Russians, called Ozomys; there we heard that several troops of
+Kalmucks had been abroad upon the desert, but that we were now
+completely out of danger of them, which was to our great
+satisfaction. Here we were obliged to get some fresh horses, and
+having need enough of rest, we stayed five days; and my partner and
+I agreed to give the honest Siberian who conducted us thither the
+value of ten pistoles.
+
+In five days more we came to Veussima, upon the river Witzogda, and
+running into the Dwina: we were there, very happily, near the end
+of our travels by land, that river being navigable, in seven days'
+passage, to Archangel. From hence we came to Lawremskoy, the 3rd
+of July; and providing ourselves with two luggage boats, and a
+barge for our own convenience, we embarked the 7th, and arrived all
+safe at Archangel the 18th; having been a year, five months, and
+three days on the journey, including our stay of about eight months
+at Tobolski.
+
+We were obliged to stay at this place six weeks for the arrival of
+the ships, and must have tarried longer, had not a Hamburgher come
+in above a month sooner than any of the English ships; when, after
+some consideration that the city of Hamburgh might happen to be as
+good a market for our goods as London, we all took freight with
+him; and, having put our goods on board, it was most natural for me
+to put my steward on board to take care of them; by which means my
+young lord had a sufficient opportunity to conceal himself, never
+coming on shore again all the time we stayed there; and this he did
+that he might not be seen in the city, where some of the Moscow
+merchants would certainly have seen and discovered him.
+
+We then set sail from Archangel the 20th of August, the same year;
+and, after no extraordinary bad voyage, arrived safe in the Elbe
+the 18th of September. Here my partner and I found a very good
+sale for our goods, as well those of China as the sables, &c., of
+Siberia: and, dividing the produce, my share amounted to 3475
+pounds, 17s 3d., including about six hundred pounds' worth of
+diamonds, which I purchased at Bengal.
+
+Here the young lord took his leave of us, and went up the Elbe, in
+order to go to the court of Vienna, where he resolved to seek
+protection and could correspond with those of his father's friends
+who were left alive. He did not part without testimonials of
+gratitude for the service I had done him, and for my kindness to
+the prince, his father.
+
+To conclude: having stayed near four months in Hamburgh, I came
+from thence by land to the Hague, where I embarked in the packet,
+and arrived in London the 10th of January 1705, having been absent
+from England ten years and nine months. And here, resolving to
+harass myself no more, I am preparing for a longer journey than all
+these, having lived seventy-two years a life of infinite variety,
+and learned sufficiently to know the value of retirement, and the
+blessing of ending our days in peace.
+
+
+
+
+End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of Further Adventures of Robinson Crusoe
+by Daniel Defoe
+
diff --git a/old/rbcr210.zip b/old/rbcr210.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..724151a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/rbcr210.zip
Binary files differ